Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n hand_n imposition_n ordination_n 2,839 5 9.9482 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A10341 A replye answering a defence of the sermon, preached at the consecration of the bishop of Bathe and Welles, by George Downame, Doctor of Divinitye In defence of an answere to the foresayd sermon imprinted anno 1609 Sheerwood, Rihcard, attributed name. 1614 (1614) STC 20620; ESTC S113712 509,992 580

There are 56 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

20._o and_o also_o all_o christian_a prince_n ergo_fw-la all_o power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o christ_n alone_o neither_o be_v his_o government_n a_o monarchy_n or_o s●le_n power_n of_o rule_n if_o this_o conclusion_n do_v not_o necessary_o follow_v upon_o the_o antecedent_n then_o the_o doctor_n if_o he_o shut_v not_o his_o right_a eye_n may_v see_v the_o looseness_n of_o his_o own_o argument_n shall_v i_o need_v to_o ask_v he_o whether_o king_n james_n do_v not_o therefore_o govern_v the_o realm_n as_o a_o monarch_n by_o his_o sole_a authority_n because_o in_o the_o government_n thereof_o he_o have_v many_o subordinate_a help_n under_o he_o or_o whether_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o such_o like_a free_a prince_n do_v not_o govern_v by_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n their_o several_a province_n because_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n their_o superior_a have_v not_o every_o master_n in_o the_o government_n of_o he_o how_o shall_v a_o sole_a superiority_n though_o some_o have_v both_o under_o they_o a_o school_n mr._n for_o their_o child_n and_o a_o steward_n for_o the_o oversight_n of_o their_o servant_n and_o above_o they_o sundry_a magistrate_n who_o in_o the_o province_n or_o country_n wherein_o they_o live_v carry_v a_o far_o more_o eminent_a and_o pecrelesse_a superiority_n it_o be_v apparent_a therefore_o that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n in_o our_o bishop_n be_v not_o impair_v by_o any_o that_o be_v superior_a or_o inferior_a to_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o commission_n join_v with_o they_o as_o such_o assistant_n as_o if_o the_o case_n require_v may_v restrain_v they_o neither_o be_v their_o monarchical_a authority_n abridge_v by_o the_o power_n of_o synod_n assemble_v as_o he_o say_v pag._n 43._o for_o the_o make_n of_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n since_o the_o king_n highness_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v a_o monarch_n though_o he_o can_v make_v new_a law_n nor_o do_v some_o thing_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o noble_n &_o commons_n assemble_v in_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n neither_o will_v the_o doctor_n fear_v to_o profess_v that_o our_o bishop_n do_v govern_v monarchical_o or_o by_o their_o sole_a authority_n save_v that_o he_o forsee_v as_o it_o seem_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 22_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v plain_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o may_v be_v thence_o infer_v that_o he_o allow_v no_o jurisdiction_n to_o presbyter_n and_o hold_v those_o church_n to_o have_v no_o lawful_a minister_n which_o have_v not_o such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v to_o ordain_v they_o and_o sure_o though_o he_o false_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la for_o disgrace_v his_o sermon_n with_o those_o inference_n yet_o if_o he_o have_v none_o other_o way_n to_o avoid_v they_o but_o by_o deny_v that_o he_o give_v unto_o bishop_n a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n he_o must_v be_v content_a hereafter_o to_o bear_v this_o imputation_n that_o he_o give_v way_n to_o those_o absurdity_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o disclaim_v for_o first_o touch_v jurisdiction_n since_o he_o place_v it_o in_o that_o singular_a and_o peerless_a power_n of_o rule_n before_o speak_v of_o sect_n 7._o which_o 9_o sect._n 9_o admit_v no_o partner_n and_o subject_v all_o both_o presbyter_n and_o people_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la to_o his_o direction_n as_o their_o ruler_n and_o to_o his_o correction_n as_o their_o judge_n that_o which_o be_v already_o press_v to_o prove_v a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n in_o bishop_n do_v direct_o serve_v to_o conclude_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o they_o for_o to_o speak_v as_o he_o do_v of_o external_a &_o public_a jurisdiction_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la which_o stand_v as_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 51._o in_o receyve_v accusation_n in_o convent_v party_n accuse_v and_o censure_v such_o as_o be_v find_v guilty_a accord_v to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o offence_n by_o reproof_n put_v to_o silence_n suspension_n deprivation_n or_o excommunication_n in_o which_o respect_n see_v all_o the_o presbyter_n within_o the_o diocese_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n yea_o even_o those_o that_o shall_v assist_v he_o aswell_o as_o other_o that_o be_v sever_v from_o he_o and_o affix_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n it_o be_v apparrant_n that_o that_o majority_n of_o rule_n which_o the_o d._n give_v he_o over_o all_o can_v be_v less_o than_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n for_o who_o can_v deny_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o power_n and_o exercise_v thereof_o so_o lift_v up_o above_o all_o other_o in_o a_o whole_a diocese_n that_o they_o be_v all_o in_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o he_o have_v no_o assistant_n to_o restrain_v he_o must_v the_o parish_n bishop_n need_v be_v a_o sole-governor_n if_o he_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o presbytery_n join_v in_o commission_n with_o he_o and_o be_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o judge_n in_o the_o king_n bench_n and_o common-plea_n who_o be_v assistant_n to_o the_o l._n chief_n justice_n be_v join_v to_o either_o of_o they_o as_o to_o help_v they_o in_o give_v right_a judgement_n so_o to_o restrain_v they_o that_o they_o judge_v not_o alone_o according_a to_o their_o own_o pleasure_n s●●_n his_o def._n lib._n 3._o pag._n 141._o 143._o and_o shall_v not_o also_o a_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n hold_v &_o exercise_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n when_o he_o be_v so_o superior_a unto_o all_o in_o his_o diocese_n that_o he_o have_v no_o assistance_n of_o any_o to_o restrain_v or_o over-rule_v he_o moreover_o if_o bishop_n only_o and_o not_o presbyter_n be_v authorize_v jure_fw-la apostolico_fw-la to_o exercise_v their_o public_a and_o external_a jurisdiction_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n over_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o their_o diocese_n as_o the_o d._n affirm_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 116._o if_o also_o the_o power_n of_o reconcile_a paenitent_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v belong_v to_o bishop_n only_o and_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o order_n pag._n 105._o then_o sure_o their_o function_n be_v dishonour_v and_o their_o authority_n impar_v by_o such_o as_o deny_v unto_o they_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n second_o concern_v ordination_n the_o reader_n be_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 37._o it_o have_v be_v a_o receyve_v opinion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o our_o age_n that_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n be_v such_o a_o peculiar_a prerogative_n of_o bishop_n as_o that_o ordinary_o and_o regular_o there_o can_v be_v no_o lawful_a ordination_n but_o by_o a_o bishop_n and_o add_v pag._n 40._o that_o the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n appropriate_v the_o ordinary_a right_n of_o ordination_n to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o and_o pag._n 42._o that_o bishop_n only_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n have_v right_a of_o orde●ninge_v minister_n regular_o and_o therefore_o though_o extraordinary_o and_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n he_o seem_v to_o allow_v of_o their_o ministry_n which_o in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o other_o minister_n yet_o this_o be_v no_o other_o allowance_n than_o he_o give_v to_o the_o baptism_n of_o woman_n or_o laie-person_n in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o minister_n for_o he_o say_v in_o plain_a term_n pag._n 44._o the_o truth_n be_v where_o minister_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o minister_n ought_v to_o baptize_v and_o where_o bishop_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o bishop_n ought_v to_o ordain_v in_o which_o word_n who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o ref_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o d._n give_v to_o bishop_n a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n if_o he_o will_v say_v as_o he_o seem_v to_o persuade_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 69._o that_o this_o argue_v only_o a_o superiority_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v and_o not_o a_o sole_a power_n then_o let_v he_o also_o profess_v plain_o that_o minister_n have_v not_o any_o sole_a power_n of_o baptise_v but_o only_o a_o superiority_n in_o that_o power_n above_o woman_n or_o other_o laie-person_n but_o he_o can_v thus_o evade_v though_o he_o will_v see_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 105._o he_o express_o affime_v that_o the_o power_n of_o impose_v hand_n to_o convey_v grace_n either_o to_o party_n baptize_v for_o their_o confirmation_n or_o to_o panitents_n for_o their_o reconciliation_n or_o to_o party_n design_v to_o the_o ministry_n for_o their_o ordination_n be_v peculiar_a unto_o bishop_n and_o to_o the_o power_n of_o their_o order_n whereby_o they_o differ_v from_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n yea_o this_o power_n of_o ordain_v be_v in_o his_o conceit_n pag._n 106._o so_o appropriate_v to_o the_o
by_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o himself_o interprete_v the_o apostle_n word_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o &_o be_v give_v the_o by_o pprophecy_n etc._n etc._n of_o his_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n not_o by_o humane_a suffrage_n but_o by_o divine_a revelation_n &_o by_o the_o commandment_n or_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lib._n 4._o p._n 141._o his_o call_n therefore_o to_o the_o ministry_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n must_v be_v extraordinary_a 2._o neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v extraordinary_a in_o titus_n that_o the_o apostle_n commit_v to_o his_o church_n the_o finish_n of_o his_o own_o work_n for_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o the_o church_n in_o creta_n and_o furnish_v they_o with_o bishop_n or_o elder_n to_o instruct_v they_o for_o himself_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v yet_o in_o constitute_v and_o unfurnished_a with_o presbyter_n to_o teach_v they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o bishop_n to_o govern_v they_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 63._o 3._o in_o like_a manner_n this_o large_a commission_n not_o confine_v to_o any_o one_o church_n or_o diocese_n but_o with_o equal_a charge_n extend_v over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o whole_a island_n be_v more_o than_o ordinary_a see_v the_o ordinary_a bishop_n and_o elder_n be_v restreyn_v to_o the_o oversight_n of_o one_o only_a church_n or_o flock_n as_o appear_v by_o act._n 20._o 28._o &_o 14._o 23._o phil._n 1._o 1._o and_o the_o doctor_n that_o have_v seek_v all_o record_n he_o can_v meet_v with_o for_o the_o next_o successor_n of_o titus_n can_v find_v none_o that_o have_v the_o like_a extent_n of_o jurisdiction_n till_o the_o next_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o apparent_a difference_n between_o he_o that_o the_o doct._n mention_v and_o titus_n as_o be_v before_o observe_v cap._n 8._o sect_n 13._o next_o before_o this_o 4._o moreover_o it_o be_v extraordinary_a that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v authorize_v to_o command_v and_o to_o speak_v with_o command_a authority_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 3_o &_o 4._o 11._o &_o 5._o 7._o tit._n 2._o 15._o for_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n know_v that_o this_o be_v rather_o apostolic_a then_o suit_v with_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n ignatius_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la rom._n know_v his_o own_o measure_n will_v not_o command_v as_o a_o apostle_n but_o exhort_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o these_o man_n by_o their_o daily_a conversation_n with_o the_o apostle_n know_v perfect_o his_o doctrine_n and_o do_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o they_o be_v send_v be_v to_o receive_v direction_n from_o they_o and_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o instruction_n 1._o cor._n 4._o 17._o &_o 16_o 10._o 16._o 2._o cor._n 7_o 13._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 2._o &_o 3._o 10._o 5._o yea_o even_o in_o gift_n and_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v they_o d._n downame_n betters_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o extraordinary_a pre-eminence_n that_o they_o be_v endow_v with_o extrordinarie_a gift_n as_o the_o reveal_n of_o secret_n and_o discern_v of_o spirit_n and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o knowledge_n for_o the_o most_o part_n infuse_v by_o revelation_n perpet_n govern_v pag._n 88_o bishop_n barlow_n serm_n in_o act._n 20._o 28_o fol._n 6._o and_o since_o some_o of_o these_o extraordinary_a preeminence_n than_o shine_v most_o clear_o when_o they_o be_v assign_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n it_o follow_v inevitable_o that_o their_o function_n be_v even_o at_o that_o time_n extraordinary_a and_o therefore_o not_o episcopal_a but_o evangelisticall_a now_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o their_o function_n be_v the_o same_o ordinary_a function_n which_o their_o successor_n &_o all_o other_o presbyter_n do_v exercise_v because_o 1._o they_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n as_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o 2._o ordain_v thereto_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 3._o and_o by_o that_o ordination_n furnish_v with_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n what_o else_o do_v he_o then_o endeavour_n to_o justify_v the_o point_n controvert_v by_o other_o no_o less_o doubtful_a if_o not_o apparent_o false_a to_o return_v now_o to_o that_o assumption_n which_o at_o the_o first_o affirm_v joint_o that_o the_o very_a function_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n aswell_o as_o their_o authority_n 4._o sect._n 4._o be_v both_o ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n it_o be_v most_o plain_a by_o the_o reason_n add_v in_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 79._o before_o he_o bring_v in_o his_o conclusion_n that_o he_o then_o intend_v as_o his_o word_n signify_v to_o justify_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o their_o function_n for_o the_o word_n of_o his_o reason_n be_v these_o if_o while_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o live_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v substitute_v in_o the_o church_n already_o plant_v such_o as_o timothy_n &_o titus_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n then_o much_o more_o after_o their_o decease_n have_v the_o church_n need_v of_o such_o governor_n to_o this_o connexive_a proposition_n himself_o add_v the_o assumption_n and_o conclusion_n pag._n 104._o follow_v but_o the_o former_a be_v evident_a by_o the_o apostle_n practise_v in_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n and_o all_o other_o apostolical_a church_n therefore_o the_o latter_a may_v not_o be_v deny_v with_o what_o face_n now_o can_v the_o doctor_n deny_v that_o this_o argument_n aim_v at_o the_o perpetual_a necessity_n for_o all_o church_n not_o only_o of_o that_o authority_n or_o power_n which_o he_o call_v episcopal_a but_o also_o of_o the_o very_a office_n or_o function_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o he_o affirm_v timothy_n &_o titus_n to_o have_v be_v his_o complaint_n therefore_o be_v very_o injurious_a as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v to_o the_o full_a when_o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la with_o wrong_v he_o in_o say_v that_o he_o make_v this_o episcopal_a power_n perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n &_o that_o he_o contradict_v himself_o in_o another_o place_n when_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o where_o the_o episcopal_a government_n may_v not_o be_v have_v a_o other_o may_v be_v admit_v but_o albeit_o the_o doctor_n be_v loath_a to_o confess_v himself_o guilty_a yet_o be_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o remorse_n that_o he_o refuse_v to_o maintain_v that_o necessity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n which_o his_o argument_n at_o first_o direct_o conclude_v howbeit_o he_o proceed_v in_o false_a accusation_n against_o his_o refuter_fw-la in_o say_v he_o do_v but_o elude_v his_o reason_n with_o a_o malepert_a speech_n because_o he_o wish_v he_o not_o to_o wave_v &_o crave_v but_o to_o prove_v the_o question_n for_o do_v he_o not_o crave_v rather_o than_o prove_v that_o which_o he_o assume_v for_o a_o round_a the_o d._n wave_v and_o crave_v &_o dance_v the_o round_a evident_a truth_n when_o he_o give_v we_o no_o other_o argument_n than_o his_o own_o naked_a affirmance_n that_o it_o be_v evident_a etc._n etc._n to_o justify_v the_o assumption_n or_o antecedent_n of_o his_o reason_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a while_o the_o apostle_n live_v to_o substitute_n in_o the_o church_n already_o plant_v man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n &_o therein_o like_a to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n and_o do_v he_o not_o wave_v to_o and_o fro_o or_o rather_o go_v back_o again_o to_o the_o first_o point_n controvert_v in_o this_o whole_a chapter_n when_o he_o avouch_v in_o the_o same_o assumption_n that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n when_o the_o apostle_n paul_n substitute_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n wherefore_o if_o his_o drift_n be_v in_o this_o division_n such_o as_o he_o avouch_v in_o the_o entrance_n thereof_o viz._n by_o a_o new_a supply_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v timothy_n &_o titus_n to_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n the_o issue_n of_o all_o his_o reason_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o plain_a dance_v the_o round_a in_o this_o fashion_n their_o function_n and_o authority_n be_v episcopal_a because_o it_o be_v not_o evangelisticall_a for_o it_o die_v not_o with_o their_o person_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o evangelisticall_a it_o die_v not_o with_o their_o person_n because_o it_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n for_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n while_o the_o apostle_n live_v it_o be_v much_o more_o necessary_a after_o their_o death_n now_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a while_o they_o live_v it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o apostle_n practise_v in_o furnish_v timothy_n and_o titus_n with_o episcopal_a power_n at_z ephesus_z and_o in_o crect_n who_o see_v not_o by_o all_o this_o his_o discourse_n that_o we_o be_v now_o just_a where_o we_o begin_v all_o this_o wave_v therefore_o from_o one_o
about_o some_o part_n of_o his_o answer_n then_o to_o propose_v any_o sound_a argument_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o point_n impugn_a which_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o perpetual_a course_n of_o this_o great_a disputer_n for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o he_o have_v so_o just_a cause_n as_o he_o suppofe_v to_o 4._o sect._n 4._o insult_v over_o his_o refuter_fw-la when_o he_o say_v to_o let_v pass_v his_o scoff_v more_o fit_a for_o a_o vice_n in_o a_o play_n then_o a_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n in_o re_fw-mi tam_fw-la seria_fw-la as_o this_o be_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la wrangle_v &_o as_o a_o man_n confound_v yet_o resolve_v to_o conntradict_v though_o against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o conscience_n deni_v the_o conclusion_n &_o contradict_v himself_o the_o contradiction_n object_v will_v come_v to_o be_v examine_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o assumption_n all_o that_o be_v say_v to_o weaken_v the_o consequence_n or_o proposition_n he_o take_v to_o be_v but_o a_o bare_a denial_n of_o the_o conclusion_n and_o first_o he_o so_o conceive_v of_o his_o quaestion_n what_o if_o every_o one_o of_o the_o church_n then_o be_v but_o one_o parish_n etc._n etc._n because_o he_o can_v see_v how_o it_o impugn_v the_o consequence_n in_o any_o respect_n but_o have_v he_o have_v so_o much_o charity_n towards_o his_o refuter_fw-la as_o he_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o himself_o he_o may_v have_v supply_v that_o which_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o his_o answer_n require_v to_o be_v necessary_o understand_v q._n d._n what_o if_o though_o that_o be_v grant_v which_o he_o suppose_v every_o one_o of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v but_o one_o parish_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o people_n have_v many_o teacher_n so_o he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o he_o impugn_v his_o consequence_n so_o far_o as_o it_o infer_v that_o the_o presbytery_n be_v not_o appoint_v unto_o parish_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o both_o wrong_v he_o to_o say_v that_o in_o that_o respect_n he_o give_v it_o no_o answer_n at_o all_o and_o sport_v himself_o in_o vain_a with_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o victory_n that_o turn_v to_o his_o ruin_n for_o his_o quaestion_n right_o conceive_v as_o before_o be_v show_v do_v in_o plain_a phrase_n of_o speak_a import_n thus_o much_o q._n d._n be_v it_o grant_v that_o parish_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v not_o distinguish_v in_o any_o city_n and_o the_o country_n never_o adjoin_v nor_o presbyter_n assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n this_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o church_n which_o by_o their_o ordination_n enjoy_v a_o presbytery_n or_o company_n of_o teacher_n may_v be_v one_o parish_n that_o be_v one_o ordinary_a congregation_n of_o christian_n assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n and_o that_o which_o be_v add_v touch_v the_o french_a &_o dutch_a church_n serve_v not_o to_o prove_v the_o main_a conclusion_n as_o the_o doctor_n suppose_v therein_o mistake_v his_o refuters_n analysis_n but_o to_o justify_v the_o denial_n of_o the_o consequence_n by_o a_o parallel_n compare_v those_o outlandish_a church_n here_o in_o england_n with_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n in_o this_o manner_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n here_o in_o england_n have_v first_o a_o presbytery_n or_o company_n of_o teacher_n allot_v to_o they_o 2._o no_n parish_n distinguish_v in_o any_o city_n for_o they_o 3._o nor_o presbyter_n so_o assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n as_o our_o parish_n minister_n be_v be_v it_o also_o grant_v that_o the_o apostolic_a church_n in_o city_n have_v the_o like_a yet_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n be_v neither_o do_v the_o want_n of_o distinct_a parish_n and_o presbyter_n assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n hinder_v their_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parishional_a &_o not_o a_o diocesan_n assembly_n that_o be_v one_o ordinary_a congregation_n of_o christian_n assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n why_o then_o may_v not_o those_o apostolic_a church_n be_v yea_o how_o shall_v the_o want_n of_o distinct_a parish_n etc._n etc._n hinder_v their_o like_a be_v if_o the_o doctor_n will_v needs_o have_v the_o comparison_n bring_v into_o a_o syllogism_n it_o may_v be_v thus_o frame_v what_o hinder_v not_o the_o french_a &_o dutch_a church_n which_o here_o in_o england_n have_v a_o presbytery_n or_o company_n of_o teacher_n allot_v to_o they_o from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parishonall_a assembly_n that_o can_v hinder_v the_o apostolic_a church_n which_o in_o city_n enjoy_v their_o presbytery_n or_o company_n of_o teacher_n from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parishonall_a assembly_n the_o want_n of_o distinct_a parish_n and_o presbyter_n so_o assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n as_o our_o parish-minister_n be_v do_v not_o hinder_v the_o french_a or_o dutch_a church_n which_o here_o in_o england_n have_v a_o presbytery_n or_o company_n of_o teacher_n allot_v to_o they_o from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parishonall_a assembly_n therefore_o the_o like_a want_n can_v hinder_v the_o apostolic_a church_n which_o in_o city_n enjoy_v their_o presbytery_n or_o company_n of_o teacher_n from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parishonall_a assembly_n as_o for_o his_o cavil_n agianst_a his_o own_o argument_n frame_v i_o will_v not_o 5._o sect._n 5._o say_v for_o the_o nonce_n to_o cavil_n withal_o but_o upon_o a_o mistake_n of_o his_o refuter_n meaning_n though_o i_o may_v pass_v by_o they_o as_o not_o direct_o touch_v any_o part_n of_o the_o argument_n before_o contrive_v yet_o because_o they_o contradict_v some_o pointer_n imply_v in_o the_o comparison_n i_o will_v remove_v they_o out_o of_o the_o way_n lest_o any_o one_o shall_v stomble_v at_o they_o first_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o hunt_v after_o some_o difference_n between_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o french_a or_o dutch_a church_n here_o in_o england_n thereby_o to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o like_a condition_n as_o the_o refuter_n comparison_n import_v i_o answer_v 1._o the_o doctor_n can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o comparison_n be_v not_o to_o be_v rack_v beyond_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o author_n that_o produce_v they_o neither_o be_v he_o so_o simple_a but_o that_o he_o may_v see_v his_o refuter_fw-la principal_o intend_v herein_o to_o compare_v the_o apostolic_a church_n with_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n that_o as_o the_o late_a have_v so_o also_o the_o former_a have_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o people_n many_o teacher_n to_o attend_v they_o and_o yet_o remain_v one_o church_n assembly_n not_o distribute_v into_o several_a congregation_n under_o several_a minister_n herein_o therefore_o if_o the_o comparison_n hold_v as_o himself_o confefse_v and_o argue_v for_o his_o advantage_n pag._n 74._o 75._o all_o the_o difference_n that_o he_o allege_v be_v they_o as_o many_o more_o as_o they_o be_v can_v contradict_v or_o infringe_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o refuter_n speech_n when_o he_o say_v do_v you_o not_o see_v the_o like_a in_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n here_o in_o england_n 2._o but_o what_o be_v the_o dissagreement_n which_o he_o have_v find_v out_o for_o the_o most_o part_n such_o as_o be_v now_o question_v concern_v the_o apostolic_a church_n for_o he_o say_v their_o presbytery_n consist_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o layman_n place_v among_o we_o not_o with_o purpose_n to_o convert_v either_o the_o ci●●●_n or_o count●●●_n to_o they_o but_o to_o attend_v they_o of_o their_o own_o church_n whereas_o contrary_a wise_a the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbytery_n of_o learned_a man_n place_v among_o they_o as_o leaven_n be_v put_v into_o the_o lump_n with_o purpose_n to_o convert_v the_o re●●_n both_o in_o ci●●●_n and_o country_n as_o if_o he_o will_v argue_v that_o they_o agree_v not_o in_o the_o point_v assume_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la for_o his_o purpose_n because_o they_o answer_v not_o his_o expectation_n in_o the_o particular_n which_o his_o imagination_n ascribe_v though_o his_o argument_n can_v convey_v they_o to_o the_o apostolic_a church_n as_o for_o that_o other_o difference_n viz._n that_o the_o french_a church_n in_o london_n be_v but_o one_o among_o many_o prosess_n the_o same_o religion_n whereas_o the_o apostolic_a church_n be_v not_o so_o before_o the_o division_n o●_n parishen_v but_o plant_v among_o heathen_a peo-ple_a though_o he_o make_v it_o a_o chief_a one_o yet_o be_v it_o srivolous_a and_o of_o no_o value_n other_o the_o doct._n pull_v down_o with_o the_o one_o hand_n what_o he_o fet_v up_o with_o the_o other_o especial_o see_v himself_o pag._n 72._o compare_v the_o french_a church_n here_o with_o those_o ancient_a christian_n who_o dwell_v in_o city_n replenish_v with_o man_n of_o another_o say_v
power_n of_o the_o truth_n see_v the_o answer_n which_o he_o have_v frame_v to_o oppugn_v it_o be_v not_o only_o evil_a and_o absurd_a but_o though_o perhaps_o against_o his_o will_n and_o meaning_n give_v way_n unto_o it_o for_o from_o his_o own_o grant_n i_o thus_o argue_v to_o infringe_v that_o assertion_n which_o he_o labour_v to_o confirm_v 1._o whosoever_o be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o any_o church_n he_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o episcopal_a order_n from_o the_o hand_n that_o ordain_v he_o but_o james_n receive_v not_o the_o power_n of_o episcopal_a order_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v he_o ordain_v by_o they_o the_o bishop_n of_o any_o church_n 2._o again_o whosoever_o by_o his_o designment_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o any_o church_n receive_v only_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o execute_v there_o that_o power_n of_o order_n which_o be_v before_o invest_v in_o his_o person_n he_o receive_v no_o new_a function_n by_o that_o designment_n but_o james_n the_o apostle_n by_o his_o designment_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n receive_v in_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n only_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o execute_v that_o power_n of_o order_n which_o before_o be_v invest_v in_o his_o person_n therefore_o he_o receive_v no_o new_a function_n by_o that_o designment_n and_o consequent_o he_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o that_o church_n to_o these_o argument_n ground_v on_o his_o own_o answer_n i_o add_v this_o that_o follow_v which_o the_o doctor_n be_v willing_a not_o to_o see_v in_o the_o refuter_n answer_v 3._o whosoever_o by_o christ_n ordination_n receive_v all_o ministerial_a power_n with_o ample_a authority_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o inall_a place_n wheresoever_o he_o become_v he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v receive_v any_o new_a power_n either_o of_o order_n or_o jurisdiction_n by_o a_o designment_n to_o the_o oversight_n or_o care_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n but_o james_n the_o apostle_n by_o christ_n ordination_n receive_v all_o ministerial_a power_n with_o ample_a authority_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o all_o place_n wherever_o he_o become_v ergo_fw-la he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v receive_v any_o new_a power_n either_o of_o order_n or_o jurisdiction_n by_o his_o designment_n to_o the_o oversight_n &_o care_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n thus_o leave_v the_o doctor_n to_o his_o best_a thought_n for_o his_o rejoynder_n in_o this_o behalf_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o exception_n chapt._n 6._o answer_v the_o father_n allege_v by_o the_o doctor_n for_o james_n his_o bishopric_n def._n lib._n 4._o chapt._n sect_n 4._o pag._n 52._o the_o next_o exception_n concern_v the_o age_n or_o antiquity_n of_o those_o 55._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 4._o pa._n 52._o &_o sect_n 2._o pag._n 55._o father_n upon_o who_o testimoney_n the_o doctor_n build_v his_o faith_n for_o james_n his_o ordination_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o refuter_fw-la find_v the_o ancient_a of_o his_o witness_n to_o be_v eusebius_n about_o the_o year_n 320._o etc._n etc._n demand_v answer_v p._n whither_o he_o have_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n disciple_n which_o live_v then_o to_o testify_v his_o ordination_n the_o doctor_n stop_v his_o mouth_n with_o a_o other_o question_n what_o one_o of_o they_o who_o writing_n be_v extant_a he_o can_v have_v allege_v who_o he_o will_v not_o reject_v as_o counterfeit_v which_o be_v a_o plain_a confession_n that_o in_o deed_n he_o have_v none_o that_o be_v worth_a the_o mention_v for_o though_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o clement_n the_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v call_v james_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n govern_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o jerusalem_n yet_o as_o if_o his_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o his_o epistle_n be_v but_o a_o counterfeit_n he_o add_v but_o suppose_v that_o none_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o those_o few_o writing_n of_o they_o which_o be_v extant_a have_v give_v testimoney_n to_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o egesippus_fw-la and_o clement_n who_o both_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o age_n to_o the_o apostle_n sufficient_a no_o very_o their_o credit_n be_v too_o weak_a as_o shall_v be_v see_v sect_n 17._o to_o overweigh_v the_o presumption_n before_o allege_v to_o show_v that_o james_n receive_v no_o such_o ordination_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o doct._n stand_v for_o it_o be_v therefore_o but_o his_o vain_a brag_n easy_o to_o be_v reject_v then_o justify_v to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o james_n his_o be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v a_o thing_n as_o notorious_a and_o as_o certain_o know_v among_o christian_n in_o those_o time_n as_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n make_v among_o we_o now_o that_o d._n cranmer_n be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o k._n h._n the_o 8._o his_o time_n for_o be_v it_o not_o rather_o much_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o see_v that_o among_o all_o the_o writing_n that_o be_v extant_a of_o ignatius_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o sundry_a other_o in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n the_o doctor_n can_v find_v any_o one_o testimony_n fit_a for_o his_o purpose_n rem_fw-la adeo_fw-la illustrem_fw-la nullum_fw-la habere_fw-la autorem_fw-la svi_fw-la seculi_fw-la aut_fw-la secundi_fw-la etc._n etc._n portento_fw-mi simile_n est_fw-la sic_fw-la chamierus_n de_fw-fr simone_n de_fw-fr oecum_fw-la pont_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 456._o sic_fw-la ego_fw-la de_fw-la jacobo_n as_o for_o that_o counterfeit_n clement_n before_o name_v he_o rather_o confute_v than_o confirm_v the_o doctor_n assertion_n for_o i_o may_v say_v of_o the_o doctor_n as_o he_o do_v of_o the_o pope_n how_o he_o can_v digest_v that_o lofty_a title_n bishop_n of_o bishop_n which_o clement_n give_v unto_o james_n i_o know_v not_o for_o do_v not_o this_o title_n usual_o ascribe_v to_o he_o as_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v as_o strong_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v a_o universal_a pope_n as_o the_o mention_n of_o his_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o jerusalem_n can_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v their_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o since_o he_o be_v say_v to_o govern_v not_o only_a sanctum_fw-la hebraeorum_n ecclesiam_fw-la hierosolymis_fw-la sed_fw-la et_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quae_fw-la ubique_fw-la dei_fw-la providentia_fw-la funda●●_n sunt_fw-la if_o prejudice_n have_v not_o forestall_v the_o doctor_n heart_n he_o will_v never_o have_v forbid_v his_o refuter_fw-la as_o he_o do_v pag._n 55._o to_o collect_v from_o thence_o that_o he_o be_v not_o otherwise_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v not_o in_o any_o other_o function_n then_o over_o all_o other_o church_n for_o do_v not_o the_o d._n measure_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o phrase_n by_o the_o line_n and_o level_v of_o that_o large_a jurisdiction_n which_o have_v no_o be_v in_o any_o bishop_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n though_o call_v universal_a patriarch_n yet_o be_v the_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n alone_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n himself_o though_o he_o clume_n to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n yet_o be_v special_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o as_o if_o he_o be_v hire_v to_o wrest_v this_o testimony_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n that_o bend_v it_o against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o a_o edition_n of_o that_o epistle_n of_o clement_n publish_v by_o sichardus_fw-la at_o basil_n anno_o 1526_o he_o read_v thus_o sed_fw-la et_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ceclesijs_fw-la which_o signifi_v that_o clemens_n direct_v his_o epistle_n not_o to_o james_n only_o but_o also_o to_o all_o church_n but_o this_o be_v to_o corrupt_v the_o text_n by_o a_o false_a finger_n for_o the_o former_a read_n do_v best_o agree_v with_o the_o title_n before_o give_v to_o james_n bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o if_o clement_n have_v mean_v to_o join_v any_o other_o with_o james_n in_o the_o inscription_n of_o his_o epistle_n he_o will_v in_o all_o likelihood_n have_v say_v sed_fw-la et_fw-la omnibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o join_v to_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o church_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n themselves_o in_o the_o next_o place_n because_o the_o doctor_n witness_n be_v all_o of_o they_o 13._o sect._n 2._o add_v sect_n 4._o pag_n 13._o such_o as_o live_v in_o the_o 4._o or_o 5._o age_n after_o christ_n his_o refuter_fw-la put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o bishop_n andrew_n word_n who_o in_o the_o like_a case_n say_v serm_n pag_n 34._o preach_v at_o hampton_n court_n 1606._o they_o write_v thing_n they_o see_v not_o and_o so_o frame_v matter_n according_a to_o their_o own_o conceit_n and_o many_o time_n
this_o chapter_n have_v give_v we_o a_o second_o reason_n for_o his_o first_o conclusion_n scz_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o s._n paul_n he_o now_o tender_v we_o a_o second_o prosyllogisme_n to_o confirm_v the_o antecedent_n of_o his_o first_o argument_n but_o to_o let_v he_o go_v free_a with_o this_o fault_n i_o will_v answer_v this_o argument_n as_o it_o stand_v &_o first_o to_o the_o proposition_n which_o although_o it_o never_o see_v the_o sun_n before_o his_o defence_n come_v abroad_o he_o take_v for_o grant_v because_o t_n c_o and_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v assail_v it_o in_o vain_a so_o he_o flatter_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o conceit_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o a_o mean_a scholar_n then_o t._n c._n or_o his_o refuter_fw-la either_o may_v easy_o discern_v the_o inconsequence_n of_o his_o proposition_n although_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v fortify_v the_o presupposal_n which_o he_o conclude_v with_o a_o double_a bulwark_n both_o of_o describe_v the_o authority_n and_o of_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n for_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n acts._n 20._o 18._o etc._n etc._n describe_v his_o own_o office_n and_o authority_n as_o he_o be_v the_o superintendent_n of_o that_o church_n &_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n there_o plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n of_o all_o superintendent_o or_o precedent_n in_o particular_a church_n &_o consequent_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n which_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v succeed_v in_o the_o like_a office_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v absurd_a from_o hence_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o apostle_n speech_n there_o presuppose_v his_o ordination_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o superintendent_n or_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o that_o church_n of_o ephesus_n wherefore_o neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tim_n &_o titus_n presuppose_v their_o ordination_n to_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o in_o describe_v their_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o those_o church_n and_o in_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n such_o as_o be_v to_o perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o christ_n come_n he_o both_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n but_o this_o which_o he_o assume_v for_o a_o truth_n i_o reject_v as_o a_o assertion_n no_o less_o void_a of_o truth_n then_o the_o main_a conclusion_n now_o in_o question_n for_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o this_o false_a supposition_n that_o none_o other_o than_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v in_o those_o time_n or_o can_v have_v by_o succession_n the_o government_n of_o particular_a church_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o can_v say_v in_o defence_n thereof_o the_o assumption_n i_o prove_v say_v he_o by_o those_o particular_n wherein_o the_o episcopal_a 78._o sect._n 4._o add_v sect_n 3._o pa._n 78._o authority_n do_v chief_o consist_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 22._o and_o also_o of_o jurisdiction_n they_o be_v the_o censure_n of_o other_o minister_n doctrine_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 3._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 16._o tit._n 1._o 10._o 11._o &_o 3._o 9_o &_o judge_n o●_n their_o person_n and_o conversation_n 1._o tim._n 5._o 19_o 20._o 21._o tit._n 3._o 10._o to_o which_o proof_n he_o answer_v nothing_o answer_v nothing_o no_o merveile_v if_o he_o have_v no_o answer_n to_o these_o proof_n as_o they_o be_v now_o fit_v to_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o new_a shape_a argument_n if_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n his_o best_a friend_n i_o think_v will_v scarce_o commend_v his_o honesty_n or_o discretion_n but_o if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o these_o proof_n before_o lay_v down_o in_o his_o sermon_n receive_v no_o answer_n at_o all_o do_v he_o not_o too_o much_o forget_v himself_o since_o he_o take_v notice_n in_o the_o next_o page_n follow_v of_o this_o reason_n yield_v for_o the_o denial_n of_o his_o assumption_n viz._n that_o those_o instruction_n comprise_v in_o the_o place_n allege_v be_v not_o give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o bishop_n but_o particular_o to_o they_o as_o evangelist_n and_o in_o general_a to_o the_o presbyter_n etc._n etc._n but_o since_o this_o answer_n be_v in_o his_o eye_n no_o answer_n at_o all_o let_v we_o try_v whether_o it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v with_o more_o truth_n that_o his_o proof_n whereof_o he_o boast_v be_v no_o clear_a proof_n either_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n before_o deny_v or_o of_o those_o which_o he_o now_o assume_v he_o know_v full_a well_o that_o his_o refuter_fw-la flat_o deni_v that_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o effect_v his_o assumption_n both_o before_o and_o now_o to_o wit_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v any_o intention_n to_o inform_v timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o diocesan_n bishop_n by_o they_o how_o to_o demean_v themselves_o in_o those_o particular_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n have_v he_o any_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o or_o can_v he_o deduce_v it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n before_o mention_v at_o least_o if_o he_o will_v needs_o cleave_v to_o his_o last_o assumption_n why_o be_v not_o the_o proof_n thereof_o if_o he_o have_v any_o contrive_v into_o form_n of_o argument_n be_v his_o syllogism_n so_o soon_o at_o a_o end_n i_o think_v he_o shall_v not_o expect_v any_o help_n in_o this_o case_n from_o his_o refuter_fw-la who_o he_o judge_v to_o be_v but_o a_o very_a bungler_n in_o the_o art_n of_o syllogise_v yet_o if_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v do_v to_o his_o hand_n i_o will_v do_v my_o best_a to_o give_v it_o the_o best_a coat_n i_o can_v and_o that_o be_v this_o whosoever_o describe_v unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o office_n and_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o succssor_n till_o christ_n come_v do_v describe_v their_o office_n &_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o those_o particular_n wherein_o episcopal_a authority_n chief_o consist_v he_o do_v in_o so_o describe_v &_o prescribe_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n but_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n describe_v their_o office_n &_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o christ_n come_v describe_v their_o office_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o those_o particular_n wherein_o piscopall_a authority_n consist_v for_o he_o describe_v their_o office_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o place_n before_o quote_v do_v show_v and_o in_o these_o particular_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n episcopal_a authority_n chief_o consist_v therefore_o s._n paul_n in_o so_o describe_v the_o authority_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n behold_v here_o good_a reader_n how_o the_o doctor_n after_o many_o wind_n in_o and_o out_o be_v retire_v back_o to_o that_o which_o he_o assume_v as_o you_o may_v see_v sect_n 1._o for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o first_o argument_n viz._n that_o episcopal_a authority_n stand_v in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n this_o be_v then_o take_v for_o grant_v and_o so_o enforce_v to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n their_o ordination_n to_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n be_v presuppose_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o they_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v that_o authority_n commit_v to_o they_o here_o it_o be_v again_o produce_v to_o justify_v the_o same_o conclusion_n because_o if_o episcopal_a authority_n consist_v in_o those_o particular_n they_o s._n paul_n describ_v of_o their_o authority_n and_o prescrib_v of_o their_o duty_n in_o the_o same_o particular_n argue_v the_o authority_n &_o duty_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v describ_v in_o those_o epistle_n etc._n etc._n so_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o some_o variety_n of_o argument_n one_o assertion_n must_v come_v twice_o upon_o the_o stage_n for_o one_o purpose_n &_o that_o with_o a_o impudent_a stout_o the_o doct._n beg_v stout_o face_n to_o beg_v rather_o than_o with_o ●ound_a reason_n from_o god_n word_n to_o confirm_v what_o be_v well_o know_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o main_a point_n controvert_v for_o his_o add_v the_o authority_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n chrysostome_n 79
at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o manage_n of_o church-cause_n and_o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v now_o say_v concern_v timothy_n &_o titus_n the_o same_o may_v be_v affirm_v of_o their_o government_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n but_o he_o ask_v whether_o paul_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n unto_o titus_n without_o mention_v either_o of_o presbytery_n or_o people_n and_o we_o may_v ask_v he_o what_o mention_n he_o find_v there_o of_o prayer_n or_o hands-imposition_n which_o ought_v to_o concur_v with_o ordination_n if_o he_o can_v include_v they_o as_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o word_n katastese_n tit._n 1._o 5_o we_o have_v as_o good_a reason_n to_o include_v the_o assistance_n of_o other_o presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n approbation_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v hoo_n egoo_v soi_fw-fr dietaxamen_fw-la as_o i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o quis_fw-la enim_fw-la credat_fw-la paulum_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o may_v believe_v paul_n otherwise_o to_o have_v order_v titus_n then_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v in_o use_n muscul_fw-la loc_fw-la con_fw-mi de_fw-fr elect_a minist_n again_o he_o ask_v or_o rather_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n be_v not_o all_o his_o precept_n for_o ordination_n and_o church-government_n direct_v only_o to_o titus_n for_o crete_n and_o to_o timothy_n for_o ephesus_n and_o do_v not_o this_o evident_o show_v that_o howsoever_o they_o may_v use_v either_o the_o presence_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n or_o the_o counsel_n &_o advise_v of_o the_o presbyter_n in_o cause_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o prince_n also_o do_v in_o commonwealth_n yet_o the_o sway_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v in_o they_o if_o there_o be_v any_o evidence_n or_o strength_n of_o truth_n in_o this_o reason_n they_o the_o like_a must_v be_v acknowledge_v in_o this_o that_o follow_v our_o saviour_n christ_n direct_v in_o singular_a term_n unto_o peter_n only_o both_o his_o whole_a speech_n concern_v the_o key_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n thereof_o math._n 16._o and_o that_o precept_n of_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n and_o of_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n joh._n 21._o 15._o 17._o luk._n 22._o 32._o wherefore_o however_o peter_n may_v use_v the_o help_n rome_n the_o doct._n reason_v well_o for_o rome_n and_o assistance_n of_o his_o fellow-apostle_n in_o all_o those_o work_n and_o the_o presence_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o key_n yet_o the_o chief_a power_n and_o sway_v of_o all_o be_v in_o he_o alone_o good_a news_n for_o rome_n if_o the_o doctor_n will_v give_v allowance_n to_o his_o argument_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v such_o singular_a speech_n direct_v to_o one_o only_a do_v not_o argue_v in_o that_o one_o any_o such_o preheminent_a power_n as_o the_o romanist_n and_o prelatist_n do_v from_o thence_o gather_v so_o that_o since_o the_o doct._n can_v not_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v any_o such_o singular_a and_o sole_a power_n in_o church-government_n as_o the_o doctor_n judge_v to_o be_v due_a unto_o bishop_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o build_v upon_o a_o vain_a and_o false_a presupposal_n when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o they_o have_v episcopal_a authority_n and_o that_o the_o direction_n give_v to_o they_o be_v precedent_n for_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o function_n but_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o have_v another_o argument_n in_o store_n thus_o frame_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v to_o inform_v not_o timothy_n and_o titus_n alone_o 83._o sect._n 10._o add_v sect_n 7._o pag_n 83._o as_o extraordinary_a person_n but_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n be_v write_v to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n but_o those_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o inform_v not_o timothy_n and_o titus_n alone_o as_o extraordinary_a person_n but_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n therefore_o they_o be_v write_v to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n unto_o the_o assumption_n the_o refuter_fw-la answer_v by_o distinction_n thus_o that_o it_o be_v true_a if_o understand_v of_o successor_n in_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o perform_v the_o same_o work_n but_o false_a if_o mean_v of_o succession_n in_o the_o same_o office_n the_o doct._n therefore_o first_o indeavour_v to_o prove_v what_o his_o refuter_fw-la deny_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o wind_a up_o of_o all_o will_v persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o what_o the_o refuter_fw-la grant_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o assumption_n but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o unless_o he_o make_v good_a what_o his_o refuter_fw-la deny_v he_o can_v conclude_v what_o he_o undertake_v for_o whether_o we_o look_v to_o his_o former_a assertion_n which_o he_o say_v be_v here_o again_o prove_v himself_o do_v thus_o explain_v it_o sect_n 3._o in_o the_o beginning_n that_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o titus_n s._n paul_n intend_v to_o inform_v they_o as_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o diocesan_n or_o whether_o we_o look_v to_o the_o near_a scoape_n of_o his_o word_n in_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 74._o it_o be_v evident_a he_o there_o intend_v to_o prove_v that_o which_o he_o suppose_v will_v be_v answer_v to_o his_o former_a objection_n viz._n that_o the_o thing_n speak_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v speak_v to_o they_o as_o extraordinary_a person_n who_o authority_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v office_n shall_v die_v with_o they_o which_o can_v be_v remove_v unless_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o as_o person_n bear_v a_o ordinary_a function_n wherein_o their_o successor_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o authority_n to_o the_o world_n end_n neither_o be_v this_o to_o deny_v his_o conclusion_n as_o he_o false_o affirm_v but_o to_o contradict_v his_o assumption_n in_o that_o sense_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v it_o good_a because_o otherwise_o he_o argue_v not_o ad_fw-la idem_fw-la let_v we_o therefore_o see_v how_o well_o his_o proof_n be_v fit_v to_o the_o assumption_n i_o prove_v it_o say_v he_o first_o by_o testimony_n both_o of_o paul_n and_o of_o ambrose_n and_o after_o by_o reason_n and_o first_o by_o s._n paul_n testimony_n that_o he_o streite_o charge_v timothy_n that_o the_o commandment_n and_o direction_n which_o he_o give_v he_o shall_v be_v keep_v inviolable_a until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 14._o ergo_fw-la they_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v the_o like_a authority_n and_o the_o same_o office_n to_o the_o end_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o enthymeme_n depend_v upon_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o commandment_n and_o direction_n give_v in_o charge_n unto_o timothy_n can_v not_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a unto_o the_o end_n without_o a_o succession_n of_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v not_o only_o the_o like_a authority_n but_o also_o the_o same_o office_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o be_v ●latly_o deny_v and_o can_v be_v fortify_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v scz_o that_o those_o commandment_n can_v not_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n who_o be_v not_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n see_v the_o member_n of_o his_o disjunction_n be_v insufficient_a when_o he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o those_o commandment_n must_v be_v perform_v either_o in_o timothees_n own_o person_n or_o in_o such_o as_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o same_o function_n for_o the_o doctor_n can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o commandment_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n math._n 28._o 19_o 20._o for_o preach_v and_o baptise_v be_v to_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o apostle_n always_o in_o their_o own_o person_n or_o by_o such_o as_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o apostolic_a function_n it_o be_v perform_v as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v by_o successor_n in_o a_o different_a function_n which_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v the_o same_o work_n though_o neither_o in_o the_o same_o office_n nor_o yet_o with_o that_o ample_a commission_n for_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o refuter_fw-la say_v that_o the_o commandment_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n by_o presbyter_n which_o succeed_v they_o though_o in_o a_o differ_a office_n according_a to_o that_o ordinary_a course_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o his_o church_n thus_o much_o for_o s._n paul_n who_o the_o doctor_n now_o leave_v and_o crave_v help_v of_o mr._n calvin_n t._n c._n and_o other_o to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n 84._o sect._n 11._o add_v sect_n 7._o pag_n 83._o 84._o scz_n that_o the_o
creta_n have_v as_o yet_o receive_v no_o firm_a support_n no_o not_o from_o humane_a evidence_n much_o less_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 13._o concern_v evodius_n linus_n mark_n simeon_n &_o other_o who_o the_o d._n say_v the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n the_o doct._n now_o leave_v the_o scripture_n search_v after_o other_o ancient_a 112._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 20._o pa._n 112._o record_n to_o see_v if_o he_o can_v find_v any_o other_o place_n where_o or_o person_n who_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n which_o if_o we_o shall_v whole_o overpasse_v in_o silence_n we_o shall_v neither_o wrong_v he_o nor_o the_o cause_n see_v the_o record_n of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n &_o drink_v in_o many_o error_n through_o oversight_n or_o want_n of_o judgement_n can_v substantial_o conclude_v the_o question_n now_o in_o hand_n as_o have_v be_v often_o observe_v but_o because_o he_o glori_v though_o without_o cause_n as_o shall_v appear_v in_o answer_n to_o his_o next_o page_n that_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n put_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o silence_n we_o will_v enter_v into_o a_o near_a search_n after_o the_o truth_n &_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o we_o shall_v lay_v open_a to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n both_o the_o falsehood_n of_o some_o of_o his_o record_n and_o his_o false_a or_o deceitful_a handle_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o antioch_n which_o as_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 81._o have_v the_o first_o bishop_n after_o jerusalem_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 45._o witness_v eusebius_n chron._n anno_fw-la 45_o and_o hist_n lib._n 3._o ca._n 22._o and_o iguat_fw-la ad_fw-la antioch_n i_o answer_n there_o be_v many_o part_n of_o s._n luke_n sacred_a ●●ory_n that_o with_o hold_v we_o from_o acknowledge_v any_o such_o episcopal_a superiority_n in_o evodius_n as_o the_o doctor_n ascribe_v to_o he_o for_o many_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n be_v record_v concern_v the_o church_n at_o antioch_n which_o fall_v out_o after_o the_o 45._o year_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o mention_v of_o evodius_n much_o less_o of_o his_o bishopric_n after_o the_o death_n of_o herod_n which_o be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the._n 3._o year_n of_o claudius_n euseb_n lib._n 2._o ca._n 9_o ex_fw-la josepho_n and._n 45._o of_o christ_n as_o euseb_n account_v in_o chron._n a_o 45._o paul_n and_o barnabas_n return_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o antioch_n acts._n 12._o 23._o 25_o at_o which_o time_n there_o be_v certain_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n there_o by_o who_o imposition_n of_o hand_n paul_n &_o barnabas_n be_v separate_v to_o the_o work_n whereunto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v they_o cap._n 13._o 1._o 2._o 3._o now_o if_o evodius_n have_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n at_o this_o time_n will_v s._n luke_n have_v overpass_v his_o name_n in_o silence_n when_o he_o rekon_v up_o the_o principal_a teacher_n that_o then_o be_v there_o and_o if_o peter_n have_v go_v after_o his_o imprisonment_n to_o antioch_n there_o to_o constitute_v evodius_n his_o successor_n will_v not_o s._n luke_n have_v give_v some_o notice_n of_o his_o be_v there_o with_o paul_n again_o when_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n come_v back_o to_o antioch_n they_o gather_v the_o church_n together_o and_o rehearse_v all_o that_o god_n have_v do_v by_o they_o &_o there_o abide_v a_o long_a time_n with_o the_o disciple_n cap._n 14._o 27._o 28._o in_o this_o their_o stay_n there_o grow_v that_o dissension_n about_o circumcision_n which_o occasion_v that_o meeting_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o end_v the_o question_n cap._n 15._o 1._o 2._o etc._n etc._n where_o be_v evodius_n all_o this_o while_n be_v he_o a_o nonresident_a from_o his_o charge_n have_v he_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o there_o resident_a how_o be_v it_o that_o we_o hear_v nothing_o of_o his_o enterteyn_a paul_n and_o barnabas_n at_o their_o return_n and_o of_o their_o relate_n to_o he_o as_o paul_n do_v afterward_o to_o james_n at_o jerusalem_n cap._n 21._o 18._o 19_o the_o success_n of_o their_o traveile_n why_o hear_v we_o nothing_o of_o his_o partake_n in_o the_o controversy_n either_o with_o or_o against_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n &_o why_o nothing_o of_o his_o go_v up_o to_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o who_o more_o fit_a to_o be_v employ_v in_o such_o a_o business_n than_o their_o bishop_n for_o which_o part_n soever_o he_o take_v it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n instruction_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n that_o as_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n apoc._n 2._o &_o 3._o so_o he_o shall_v have_v his_o due_a praise_n or_o dispraise_v for_o resist_v or_o support_v those_o false_a teacher_n that_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n to_o go_v forward_o as_o the_o the_o story_n lead_v after_o the_o the_o synod_n be_v end_v judas_n and_o silas_n be_v send_v with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n unto_o antioch_n a●d_a letter_n be_v write_v not_o to_o the_o bishop_n but_o to_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o be_v according_o deliver_v to_o the_o multitude_n assemble_v who_o rejoice_v for_o the_o consolation_n cap._n 15._o 22._o 23._o 30._o 31._o judas_n and_o silas_n stay_v there_o for_o a_o time_n so_o do_v paul_n &_o barnabas_n till_o they_o be_v so_o stir_v that_o they_o part_v company_n vers_fw-la 32._o 35._o 39_o 40_o but_o before_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v divide_v peter_n come_v thither_o be_v withstand_v by_o paul_n to_o his_o face_n for_o that_o offence_n which_o he_o give_v in_o withdraw_a himself_o from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o paul_n himself_o relate_v gal._n 2._o 11._o 12._o 13._o in_o all_o these_o event_n what_o do_v evodius_n worthy_a the_o name_n or_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n endow_v with_o such_o a_o singularity_n of_o power_n and_o honour_n above_o all_o other_o teacher_n though_o of_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o presbyter_n as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v within_o his_o diocese_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o doctor_n pag._n 136._o lib._n 3._o ought_v not_o he_o to_o have_v interpose_v his_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o command_v his_o people_n to_o keep_v the_o decree_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o appease_v those_o contention_n which_o arise_v between_o paul_n and_o peter_n and_o between_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n while_o they_o converse_v within_o his_o jurisdiction_n surely_n what_o ever_o the_o d._n conceive_v of_o these_o matter_n who_o can_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o s._n luke_n and_o s._n paul_n will_v have_v bury_v in_o silence_n the_o name_n office_n and_o endeavour_n of_o evodius_n if_o he_o have_v be_v so_o long_o before_o ordain_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n as_o for_o eusebius_n his_o chronicle_n it_o do_v too_o much_o discredit_v itself_o 2._o sect._n 2._o to_o be_v credit_v of_o we_o in_o this_o case_n for_o it_o say_v that_o peter_n in_o the_o last_o year_n of_o tiberius_n which_o be_v the._n 39_o of_o christ_n place_v his_o chai●e_n at_o antioch_n and_o there_o sit_v 25._o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o 2._o year_n of_o claudius_n he_o remove_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o sit_v also_o 25._o year_n because_o both_o these_o computation_n can_v stand_v together_o the_o first_o 25._o year_n be_v general_o esteem_v a_o error_n and_o reduce_v to_o 7._o year_n but_o yet_o these_o absurdity_n remain_v 1._o that_o peter_n abode_n 7._o year_n at_o antioch_n and_o his_o remove_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o second_o of_o claudius_n can_v accord_v with_o s._n luke_n story_n for_o his_o continuance_n in_o judea_n and_o his_o imprisonment_n by_o herod_n not_o long_o before_o the_o death_n of_o herod_n see_v doctor_n reynolds_n conf._n with_o hart._n cap._n 6._o divis_fw-la 3._o and_o d._n whit._n de_fw-fr pont_n rom._n quest_n 3._o pag_n 346._o 347._o 2._o that_o peter_n remove_v from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o 2._o year_n of_o claudius_n contradict_v the_o d._n assertion_n scz_o that_o evodius_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n by_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 45_o which_o be_v the._n 3._o year_n of_o claudius_n by_o eusebius_n his_o own_o account_n notwithstanding_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o may_v be_v a_o truth_n in_o the_o main_a point_n avouch_v by_o eusebius_n and_o ignatius_n to_o wit_n that_o evodius_n be_v the_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n there_o place_v before_o ignatius_n for_o a_o parish-bishoprick_n that_o be_v the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n set_v over_o one_o particular_a congregation_n be_v grant_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la to_o be_v establish_v every_o where_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o that_o function_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n which_o the_o doct._n contend_v for_o be_v deny_v and_o worthy_o see_v it_o be_v
viz._n that_o bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o in_o respect_n of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n aswell_o as_o order_n but_o though_o he_o deal_v honest_o that_o himself_o and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o king_n henry_n day_n restreyn_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n yet_o he_o cast_v a_o great_a blemish_n &_o disgrace_n upon_o those_o our_o forefather_n in_o signify_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n consent_v not_o with_o they_o but_o with_o he_o and_o against_o they_o in_o this_o point_n as_o for_o that_o clause_n he_o add_v as_o be_v also_o the_o apostle_n who_o successor_n the_o bishop_n be_v i_o know_v not_o to_o what_o purpose_v it_o serve_v save_v to_o discover_v his_o contradictinge_v either_o himself_o or_o the_o truth_n the_o d._n contradict_v himself_o or_o the_o truth_n truth_n himself_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o be_v as_o large_a as_o that_o equality_n which_o be_v among_o the_o apostle_n for_o they_o he_o err_v in_o restreyn_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n unto_o power_n of_o order_n only_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o other_o equality_n among_o themselves_o than_o he_o give_v to_o bishop_n for_o they_o be_v equal_a also_o in_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n aswell_o as_o in_o power_n of_o order_n as_o be_v right_o acknowledge_v by_o our_o bishop_n in_o their_o book_n and_o by_o the_o auncient_a bishop_n in_o their_o writing_n neither_o be_v it_o true_a as_o the_o doct._n will_v insinuate_v tha●_n bishop_n only_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n successor_n the_o d._n untrue_o insinuate_v that_o bishop_n only_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n for_o to_o speak_v proper_o they_o have_v no_o successor_n and_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n all_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o hold_v and_o teach_v their_o doctrine_n be_v their_o successor_n and_o herein_o we_o have_v against_o he_o among_o many_o other_o the_o consent_n of_o those_o reverend_a bishop_n who_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n give_v none_o of_o his_o apostle_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n any_o such_o authority_n as_o the_o pope_n claim_v over_o prince_n or_o in_o civil_a matter_n do_v make_v application_n thereof_o aswell_o to_o priest_n as_o to_o bishop_n but_o the_o d._n notwithstanding_o upon_o this_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o may_v not_o infer_v because_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o superior_a to_o the_o 72_o disciple_n or_o because_o bishop_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o superior_a to_o other_o minister_n whereunto_o i_o can_v say_v it_o be_v true_a if_o it_o be_v apparent_a first_o that_o bishop_n &_o other_o minister_n do_v differ_v by_o any_o special_a difference_n as_o the_o 72._o disciple_n do_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o no_o such_o thing_n appear_v either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o bishop_n book_n from_o whence_o the_o doct._n reason_v but_o rather_o as_o have_v be_v show_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la and_o be_v before_o maintain_v the_o clean_a contrary_n second_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v any_o superiority_n over_o these_o disciple_n the_o which_o the_o doctor_n will_v not_o so_o easy_o prove_v as_o take_v for_o grant_v see_v 1._o christ_n live_v the_o apostle_n have_v no_o authority_n over_o any_o 2._o their_o apostolical_a authority_n be_v not_o as_o then_o when_o the_o 72._o be_v send_v forth_o commit_v unto_o they_o and_o 3._o it_o appear_v not_o that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o 72._o be_v to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n after_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o remain_v for_o that_o present_a journey_n and_o afterward_o to_o be_v dispose_v of_o as_o christ_n please_v three_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o as_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o apostle_n among_o themselves_o and_o the_o suppose_a superiority_n they_o have_v over_o the_o 72_o take_v not_o away_o their_o subjection_n and_o inferiority_n to_o christ_n so_o neither_o do_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o nor_o their_o superioty_n over_o other_o minister_n take_v away_o their_o inferiority_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o any_o necessity_n of_o consequence_n wherefore_o i_o must_v for_o this_o testimony_n the_o refuse_fw-la right_o allege_v the_o testimony_n testimony_n conclude_v 1._o that_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v right_o allege_v it_o and_o 2._o that_o the_o d._n have_v wrong_v not_o only_o his_o refuter_fw-la but_o we_o &_o they_o in_o labour_v and_o that_o with_o slander_n to_o wrest_v their_o testimony_n out_o of_o our_o hand_n the_o next_o testimony_n be_v take_v from_o the_o book_n call_v reform_v leg_n eccles_n 5._o sect_n 2._o ref._n pag._n 4._o d._n pag._n 5._o cap._n 10._o 11._o de_fw-la divinis_fw-la offic_n ijs_fw-la to_o prove_v that_o those_o which_o make_v the_o book_n deem_v that_o as_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la so_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o minister_n and_o certeyn_a senior_n or_o elder_n in_o every_o parish_n be_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n &_o so_o consequent_o his_o doctrine_n in_o his_o sermon_n contrary_a to_o their_o judgement_n in_o answer_v whereunto_o 1._o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o egregious_a falsifyer_n and_o columniate_v the_o d._n columniate_v the_o allegation_n to_o be_v forge_v but_o by_o that_o time_n the_o matter_n be_v examine_v i_o persuade_v myself_o the_o reader_n will_v think_v it_o meet_v the_o doctor_n take_v home_o those_o speech_n to_o himself_o as_o his_o own_o proper_a the_o rather_o see_v the_o ref_n set_v not_o down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n but_o only_o his_o own_o collection_n out_o of_o they_o 2._o he_o father_v that_o upon_o he_o which_o he_o neither_o say_v nor_o mean_v with_o what_o eye_n trow_o we_o look_v he_o upon_o the_o refuter_n word_n that_o he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v as_o he_o afterward_o intimate_v that_o the_o slaunder_v the_o doct._n slaunder_v compiler_n of_o the_o book_n mean_v to_o bring_v in_o lay-elders_a or_o to_o establish_v the_o pretend_a parish_n discipline_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o now_o debate_v the_o matter_n as_o it_o deserve_v at_o large_a and_o first_o it_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o book_n be_v cite_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n in_o his_o sermon_n be_v against_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o immediate_a forefather_n we_o be_v to_o see_v what_o his_o doctrine_n be_v viz_o that_o as_o the_o episcopal_a function_n in_o quçstion_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la so_o all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v in_o the_o bishop_n hand_n only_o that_o the_o pastor_n of_o particular_a flock_n as_o they_o have_v their_o authority_n from_o the_o bishop_n so_o all_o the_o authority_n they_o have_v be_v in_o fore_n conscientia_fw-la not_o in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la either_o for_o direction_n or_o correction_n that_o belong_v whole_o to_o the_o bishop_n he_o be_v to_o reform_v abus●_n exercise_n church_n censure_n against_o offender_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a congregation_n with_o any_o assistant_n of_o lay-elders_a or_o other_o associate_n to_o execute_v any_o censure_n &c_n &c_n whereof_o we_o may_v see_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 4._o point_n of_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 45-52_a and_o however_o in_o his_o defence_n he_o do_v in_o part_n deny_v this_o to_o be_v his_o doctrine_n yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_o aver_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o hereafter_o follow_v to_o be_v his_o doctrine_n now_o to_o prove_v that_o this_o his_o doctrine_n be_v against_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o father_n be_v that_o book_n allege_v the_o doct._n be_v now_o to_o make_v good_a his_o charge_n if_o he_o can_v he_o say_v he_o will_v do_v it_o by_o transcribe_v the_o 10._o &_o 11._o chap._n cite_v the_o bare_a recital_n whereof_o be_v as_o he_o say_v a_o sufficient_a consutation_n of_o his_o forge_a allegation_n the_o word_n transcribe_v by_o he_o be_v evening_n prayer_n be_v end_v in_o city_n parish_n church_n whereunto_o after_o the_o sermon_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o concourse_n of_o all_o in_o their_o own_o church_n the_o principal_a minister_n who_o they_o call_v parochum_fw-la the_o parson_n or_o past●r_n and_o the_o deacon_n if_o they_o be_v present_a etc._n etc._n and_o senior_n be_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o people_n how_o the_o money_n provide_v for_o godly_a use_n may_v be_v best_a bestow_v &_o to_o the_o same_o time_n let_v the_o discipline_n be_v reserve_v for_o they_o who_o have_v commit_v any_o public_a wickedness_n to_o the_o common_a offence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o
make_v it_o to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n be_v all_o one_o or_o know_v he_o how_o far_o and_o unto_o who_o he_o reach_v the_o name_n of_o a_o heretic_n very_o chrisostom_n say_v sacerdotali_fw-la say_v in_o 1._o tim._n hom._n 11._o ad_fw-la evagrium_fw-la quaest_a vet_z et_fw-la novi_fw-la testan_n q._n 101_o de_fw-la dignitat_fw-la sacerdotali_fw-la between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n in_o a_o manner_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n s._n jerom_n say_v somewhat_o in_o rough_a sort_n i_o here_o say_v there_o be_v one_o become_v so_o peevishe_a that_o he_o set_v deacon_n before_o priest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o bishop_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n plain_o teach_v we_o that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o st._n austin_n say_v what_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o the_o first_o priest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o high_a priest_n so_o say_v saint_n ambrose_n there_o be_v but_o one_o consecration_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n for_o both_o of_o they_o be_v priest_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o first_o all_o these_o and_o other_o mo●_n holy_a father_n together_o with_o saint_n paul_n the_o apostle_n for_o thus_o say_v by_o mr._n hardinge_n advise_v must_n be_v hold_v for_o haeretike_n and_o in_o his_o reply_n to_o he_o article_n 4._o page_n 309._o have_v show_v what_o primacy_n or_o headship_n jerom_n give_v to_o peter_n viz_o that_o to_o avoid_v confusion_n which_o light_o happen_v in_o all_o company_n where_o no_o order_n be_v christ_n appoint_v peter_n for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o elder_a man_n to_o speak_v and_o deal_v for_o the_o rest_n as_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o all_o his_o brethren_n he_o add_v these_o word_n which_o order_n also_o be_v afterward_o universal_o take_v throughout_o the_o world_n that_o in_o every_o congregation_n of_o priest_n one_o shall_v have_v a_o special_a pre-eminence_n above_o other_o and_o be_v call_v episcopus_fw-la bishop_n this_o be_v think_v a_o good_a politic_a way_n to_o avoid_v conteution_n in_o the_o church_n by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o worthy_a jewel_n be_v persuade_v 1._o that_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o bishop_n above_o other_o minister_n be_v first_o bring_v in_o by_o humane_a policy_n and_o not_o by_o any_o divine_a ordinance_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o that_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o original_a and_o establishment_n thereof_o be_v only_o a_o pre-eminence_n such_o as_o peter_n have_v above_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n which_o be_v at_o the_o most_o of_o order_n only_o and_o not_o of_o any_o superior_a command_a power_n &_o jurisdiction_n and_o 3._o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a ch_z other_o elder_n beside_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o judgement_n of_o these_o two_o bishop_n cite_v by_o 10._o sect._n 4._o ref._n pag._n 5._o d._n pag._n 9_o 10._o the_o refuter_fw-la now_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n whether_o he_o have_v utter_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n in_o say_v the_o doctor_n sermon_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v by_o the_o bishop_n or_o rather_o whether_o the_o doctor_n have_v not_o malicious_o malicious_o the_o d._n slander_v malicious_o slander_v he_o in_o so_o charge_v he_o i_o say_v malicious_a and_o if_o his_o conscience_n be_v spur_v the_o quaestion_n from_o the_o abundance_n whereof_o his_o pen_n write_v it_o will_v subscribe_v to_o it_o for_o know_v he_o not_o all_o this_o to_o be_v true_a in_o the_o bishop_n book_n quote_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la in_o his_o margin_n yea_o be_v not_o divers_a part_n of_o these_o testimony_n express_v in_o the_o refuter_n answer_v page_n 34._o and_o 124_o do_v he_o not_o read_v they_o there_o and_o have_v he_o not_o slip_v they_o over_o with_o such_o a_o slubber_v that_o if_o he_o be_v not_o far_o spend_v he_o can_v lay_v they_o and_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o together_o without_o the_o blushredd-colour_n well_o but_o the_o doctor_n be_v none_o of_o they_o that_o will_v be_v mad_a without_o reason_n he_o therefore_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v not_o credit_n his_o refuter_fw-la for_o say_v he_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n appear_v best_a by_o the_o article_n and_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n which_o reason_n be_v without_o reason_n and_o argue_v the_o man_n not_o so_o well_o advise_v as_o he_o may_v be_v when_o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o apology_n thereof_o write_v as_o himself_o say_v by_o bishop_n jewel_n from_o the_o apology_n itself_o and_o author_n own_o exposition_n and_o defence_n of_o it_o be_v it_o likely_a think_v you_o that_o other_o man_n shall_v understand_v he_o better_o than_o himself_o do_v either_o in_o the_o apology_n or_o defence_n of_o it_o especial_o be_v authorize_v to_o write_v it_o by_o our_o church_n and_o it_o allow_v yea_o command_v to_o be_v in_o all_o our_o church_n but_o let_v we_o examine_v his_o allegation_n apart_o the_o first_o be_v the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o what_o do_v that_o the_o 36._o article_n thereof_o approve_v say_v he_o the_o book_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o what_o then_o that_o book_n say_v he_o in_o the_o preface_n thereof_o say_v that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o have_v be_v those_o order_n of_o minister_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o christ_n church_n and_o that_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n appoint_v they_o in_o his_o church_n be_v not_o this_o a_o sweet_a proof_n mark_v it_o well_o the_o article_n approve_v the_o book_n and_o the_o preface_n of_o that_o book_n say_v that_o those_o three_o order_n have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n approve_v the_o function_n of_o bishop_n and_o their_o superiority_n above_o priest_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a ordinance_n as_o if_o 1._o what_o soever_o be_v say_v in_o the_o preface_n before_o the_o book_n which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n be_v do_v by_o one_o or_o two_o only_a and_o not_o by_o so_o general_a a_o consent_n as_o the_o book_n itself_o must_v needs_o be_v allow_v for_o the_o currant_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o that_o age_n because_o the_o 36._o article_n in_o our_o book_n of_o article_n do_v for_o some_o purpose_n approve_v the_o book_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n etc._n etc._n as_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o such_o consecration_n but_o 2._o do_v that_o preface_n say_v that_o those_o 3._o order_n be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n no_o but_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n exclusive_o which_o word_n do●_n not_o prove_v they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o the_o contrary_a as_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v show_v out_o of_o chamier_n de_fw-fr pontif_n oecum_fw-la in_o his_o answer_n page_n 87._o in_o the_o like_a phrase_n of_o jerom_n to_o evagrius_n say_v that_o from_o mark_v the_o evangelist_n unto_o heraclas_n etc._n etc._n one_o of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v choose_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n &_o set_v over_o the_o rest_n etc._n etc._n but_o 3._o it_o seem_v they_o mean_v otherwise_o by_o the_o last_o clause_n which_o the_o d._n cit_v that_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n appoint_v they_o in_o his_o church_n but_o the_o reader_n must_v know_v that_o that_o sentence_n be_v none_o of_o they_o nor_o to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o preface_n it_o have_v please_v the_o d._n ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la to_o add_v that_o clause_n of_o his_o own_o head_n and_o clean_o contrary_a to_o their_o meaning_n that_o make_v that_o book_n at_o least_o for_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v cap._n 3_o before_o go_v they_o hold_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n it_o the_o d._n add_v one_o sentence_n to_o his_o testimony_n and_o detract_v another_o from_o it_o to_o be_v a_o politic_a devise_n of_o man_n and_o not_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n let_v we_o go_v forward_o with_o the_o doctor_n he_o add_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v require_v to_o correct_v and_o punish_v according_a to_o such_o authority_n as_o he_o have_v by_o god_n word_n here_o 1._o i_o charge_v the_o d_o as_o before_o with_o the_o add_v of_o one_o sentence_n so_o here_o with_o the_o detract_n of_o another_o while_o he_o deceitful_o conceal_v part_n of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o book_n require_v the_o bishop_n to_o correct_v and_o punish_v etc._n etc._n according_a to_o such_o authority_n as_o he_o have_v by_o god_n word_n and_o the_o ordinance_n of_o this_o realm_n which_o late_a clause_n of_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n they_o will_v never_o have_v add_v have_v they_o think_v that_o the_o power_n
which_o our_o bishop_n exercise_n be_v whole_o by_o god_n word_n but_o 2._o though_o those_o word_n detract_v by_o the_o doctor_n have_v not_o be_v add_v by_o they_o if_o he_o think_v it_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o function_n now_o exercise_v by_o bishop_n be_v warrant_v to_o they_o by_o god_n word_n he_o forget_v his_o own_o distinction_n between_o potest_fw-la as_o &_o modus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la together_o with_o the_o difference_n which_o he_o put_v between_o function_n and_o authority_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 100_o 102._o &_o 147._o neither_o 3._o be_v that_o authority_n which_o the_o book_n require_v bishop_n to_o exercise_v such_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o correction_n as_o the_o doctor_n give_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o same_o book_n require_v also_o of_o every_o minister_n aswell_o as_o of_o the_o bishop_n at_o his_o ordination_n that_o he_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n &_o he_o the_o d._n own_o testimony_n against_o he_o discipline_n so_o give_v every_o minister_n a_o stroke_n in_o the_o outward_a policy_n &_o government_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o as_o the_o bishop_n which_o the_o doct._n take_v quite_o from_o he_o but_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n the_o book_n of_o article_n do_v in_o deed_n show_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n in_o some_o matter_n of_o policy_n and_o church_n government_n devise_v by_o man_n aswell_o as_o in_o more_o weighty_a point_n of_o faith_n set_v down_o in_o god_n word_n wherefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n concern_v the_o late_a be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o the_o book_n of_o consecration_n or_o the_o 36._o article_n that_o establish_v it_o much_o less_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o that_o book_n but_o rather_o in_o those_o article_n which_o concern_v faith_n and_o sacrament_n for_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o our_o church_n be_v assemble_v in_o parliament_n evident_o perceive_v that_o there_o be_v some_o clause_n sentence_n and_o article_n in_o that_o book_n and_o the_o preface_n thereof_o not_o warrantable_a by_o the_o word_n do_v therefore_o approve_v of_o it_o no_o further_o than_o it_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n and_o provide_v also_o that_o no_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v tie_v by_o his_o subscription_n further_o to_o approve_v it_o as_o well_o appear_v by_o the_o statute_n 13._o elizab_n cap._n 12._o and_o here_o i_o wish_v the_o reader_n 1._o to_o take_v notice_n that_o in_o all_o that_o book_n there_o be_v no_o word_n of_o archbishop_n archdeacon_n dean_n rural_a dean_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o row_n so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v find_v be_v like_o in_o the_o word_n nor_o have_v god_n by_o his_o spirit_n appoint_v they_o in_o his_o church_n 2._o to_o observe_v how_o the_o doct._n that_o so_o bold_o and_o confident_o that_o i_o say_v no_o more_o reject_v so_o many_o synod_n church_n and_o learned_a man_n allege_v by_o the_o refut_o and_o acknowledge_v by_o himself_o to_o be_v orthodoxal_a divine_n be_v not_o so_o well_o see_v in_o his_o allegation_n here_o as_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v sure_o he_o may_v very_o well_o conceive_v that_o we_o may_v take_v exception_n not_o only_o to_o his_o book_n of_o order_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o to_o the_o article_n that_o establish_v it_o both_o be_v make_v by_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o seek_v their_o own_o pre-eminence_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v both_o so_o far_o except_v against_o by_o that_o whole_a assembly_n of_o parliament_n as_o not_o to_o bind_v any_o by_o subscription_n to_o approve_v they_o so_o much_o as_o consonant_a to_o the_o word_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o the_o d._n deal_v with_o we_o therein_o come_v we_o now_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o english_a ●●_o sect._n ●●_o church_n collect_v as_o the_o d_o say_v out_o of_o the_o apology_n the_o word_n as_o he_o lay_v they_o down_o be_v these_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n whereof_o some_o be_v deacon_n some_o priest_n some_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o shall_v have_v read_v out_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sentence_n and_o not_o break_v off_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n so_o keep_v many_o of_o his_o reader_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o if_o he_o dare_v for_o overthrowinge_v his_o own_o cause_n for_o the_o very_a next_o word_n insinuate_v that_o these_o diverse_a degree_n he_o if_o the_o d._n have_v read_v his_o own_o testimony_n to_o the_o end_n it_o will_v have_v be_v against_o he_o be_v of_o order_n not_o of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n while_o they_o make_v the_o office_n of_o those_o divers_a degree_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o say_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o office_n to_o instruct_v the_o people_n and_o the_o whole_a charge_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o religion_n it_o seem_v the_o d._n be_v somewhat_o shortwinded_a when_o he_o read_v that_o sentence_n and_o i_o challenge_v he_o to_o bring_v one_o word_n out_o of_o all_o that_o confession_n that_o give_v more_o authority_n to_o bishop_n then_o to_o other_o minister_n that_o be_v call_v priest_n do_v not_o the_o 7._o article_n of_o that_o confession_n profess_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o minister_n one_o aswell_o as_o another_o power_n to_o bind_v to_o loose_v to_o open_v to_o shut_v do_v it_o not_o make_v the_o authority_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v to_o be_v in_o tha●_n censure_v of_o excommunication_n and_o absolve_v from_o it_o aswell_o as_o in_o preach_v mercy_n or_o judgement_n do_v it_o not_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o key_n whereby_o the_o minister_n must_v open_v or_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o he●ve●_n and_o do_v it_o not_o affirm_v that_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n aswell_o as_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o authority_n of_o open_v and_o shut_v by_o it_o and_o that_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o judge_n in_o this_o case_n though_o he_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o right_a to_o challenge_v a_o authority_n or_o power_n that_o be_v as_o the_o observation_n upon_o it_o understand_v it_o civil_a or_o to_o make_v law_n to_o man_n conscience_n to_o be_v short_a do_v it_o not_o affirm_v that_o see_v one_o manner_n of_o word_n be_v give_v to_o all_o and_o one_o only_a key_n belong_v to_o all_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a power_n of_o all_o minister_n as_o concern_v open_v and_o shut_v if_o i_o belie_v not_o the_o confession_n but_o that_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n thereof_o let_v he_o that_o read_v confider_v whether_o the_o confession_n produce_v by_o the_o doctor_n as_o a_o advocate_n in_o his_o behalf_n to_o prove_v the_o refuter_n four_o untruth_n have_v not_o as_o a_o judge_n give_v sentence_n against_o his_o own_o client_n worthy_o therefore_o have_v he_o here_o cite_v this_o confession_n and_o of_o no_o less_o worth_n be_v his_o own_o observation_n upon_o it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v say_v he_o that_o our_o church_n acknowledge_v nothing_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o con●●yned_v in_o god_n word_n or_o ground_v thereon_o and_o i_o will_v note_v it_o with_o he_o and_o do_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o note_v well_o for_o we_o and_o against_o himself_o the_o doct._n note_n be_v for_o we_o and_o against_o himself_o himself_o for_o if_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o such_o bishop_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n why_o put_v he_o a_o difference_n between_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o refer_v the_o question_n of_o the_o function_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o former_a lib._n 3._o page_n 38_o and_o how_o be_v their_o government_n mutable_a and_o not_o perpetual_o necessary_a as_o in_o his_o defence_n he_o often_o affirm_v in_o deed_n he_o once_o say_v that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v the_o same_o with_o we_o as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n as_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well_o be_v but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n this_o be_v the_o doctor_n faith_n when_o he_o preach_v and_o print_v his_o sermon_n page_n 79._o but_o it_o seem_v his_o refuter_fw-la have_v occasion_v his_o departure_n from_o it_o but_o let_v we_o that_o pass_v and_o keep_v we_o he_o to_o his_o note_n here_o thus_o i_o reason_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o our_o church_n acknowledge_v nothing_o for_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o
the_o approbation_n of_o their_o function_n in_o this_o or_o that_o particular_a text_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o doctor_n himself_o may_v and_o do_v embrace_v the_o one_o and_o yet_o reject_v the_o other_o else_o how_o dare_v he_o understand_v that_o text_n act._n 20_o 28._o as_o he_o do_v serm_n page_n 18._o 37._o 69._o of_o inferior_a presbyter_n which_o have_v no_o power_n either_o of_o ordination_n or_o of_o external_a jurisdiction_n contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n barloe_n who_o i●_n his_o sermon_n thereon_o at_o hampton_n court_n pag._n 3._o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o those_o word_n speek_v full_o for_o the_o prelacy_n and_o describe_v therein_o every_o part_n of_o the_o outward_a function_n of_o bishop_n as_o for_o the_o d._n reason_n move_v he_o to_o examine_v what_o manner_n of_o person_n be_v note_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o maintain_v the_o refuter_n objection_n yet_o surcease_o to_o contend_v further_o therein_o i_o will_v overpasse_v his_o 2._o section_n pag._n 29_o &_o 30_o it_o have_v nothing_o material_a or_o worthy_a of_o reply_n save_v what_o be_v already_o speak_v to_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d section_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o 3._o &_o 4._o section_n concern_v the_o number_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o their_o pre-eminence_n because_o we_o shall_v have_v fit_a place_n for_o they_o hereafter_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o i_o will_v therefore_o here_o pass_v by_o they_o and_o so_o come_v to_o his_o 5._o section_n in_o his_o 5._o section_n two_o thing_n may_v be_v commend_v to_o the_o reader_n 35._o sect._n 4._o add_v sect_n 5._o def._n p._n 35._o observation_n first_o the_o refut_o say_v pag._n 4._o that_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n needful_a to_o inquire_v what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n those_o angel_n be_v because_o bishop_n bilson_n and_o bishop_n barloe_n have_v fancy_v to_o themselves_o another_o sort_n of_o bishop_n then_o either_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v mention_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o any_o sound_a divine_a offer_v to_o teach_v thereout_o the_o doct._n from_o thence_o infer_v that_o the_o controversy_n which_o remain_v to_o be_v decide_v be_v this_o viz._n whether_o sort_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o those_o learned_a and_o himself_o defend_v or_o such_o as_o his_o adversary_n and_o his_o adherent_n stand_v for_o be_v that_o kind_n of_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v of_o late_o devise_v where_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v see_v how_o cunning_o he_o change_v question_n the_o d._n change_v the_o question_n the_o question_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o controversy_n to_o be_v decide_v be_v this_o whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v understand_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n rev._n 1._o 20._o such_o bishop_n as_o our_o english_a praelate_n be_v or_o rather_o such_o as_o his_o refuter_fw-la and_o his_o adherent_n stand_v for_o but_o witty_o and_o not_o unwitting_o do_v he_o shun_v this_o controversy_n for_o it_o seem_v he_o know_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o his_o refuter_fw-la add_v to_o wit_n that_o if_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n bishop_n manifest_o warrant_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n in_o his_o word_n and_o the_o joint_a interpretation_n of_o all_o protestant_n divine_v will_v have_v content_v he_o &_o other_o of_o his_o side_n we_o neither_o have_v need_n nor_o occasion_n of_o this_o examination_n wherefore_o though_o he_o offer_v two_o thing_n to_o our_o consideration_n for_o the_o decide_n of_o the_o former_a question_n viz._n what_o manner_n of_o church_n they_o be_v whereof_o they_o be_v angel_n &_o what_o manner_n of_o pre-eminence_n they_o have_v in_o those_o church_n yet_o he_o close_o slide_v etc._n the_o d._n close_o slide_v from_o debate_v point_n propound_v and_o then_o brag_v etc._n etc._n from_o the_o debate_n of_o they_o and_o propound_v his_o 5._o point_n before_o note_v diverse_a from_o these_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o their_o stead_n so_o that_o his_o first_o assertion_n which_o he_o promise_v plain_o to_o prove_v have_v none_o other_o direct_a proof_n than_o the_o bare_a propound_v of_o those_o two_o question_n which_o he_o offer_v to_o our_o consideration_n which_o the_o d._n know_v well_o enough_o notwithstanding_o he_o brag_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o adjure_v his_o reader_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n without_o partiality_n to_o see_v on_o which_o side_n be_v better_a evidence_n and_o more_o pregnant_a proof_n and_o to_o assent_v thereunto_o second_o where_o the_o doct._n undertake_v to_o prove_v out_o of_o his_o text_n that_o the_o office_n and_o function_n of_o his_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v lawful_a and_o good_a &_o the_o refuter_fw-la tell_v he_o it_o be_v soon_o say_v but_o not_o so_o soon_o do_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o his_o text_n to_o prove_v it_o because_o to_o be_v light_n star_n angel_n which_o be_v all_o the_o d._n have_v say_v or_o can_v show_v out_o of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o his_o diocesan_n but_o common_a to_o all_o true_a pastor_n of_o particular_a congregation_n as_o himself_o have_v teach_v in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o dignity_n and_o duty_n of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 20_o 61._o the_o d._n repli_v indeed_o but_o as_o a_o man_n out_o of_o temper_n charge_v his_o ref_n to_o wrangle_v and_o to_o have_v nothi_fw-la g_o to_o say_n but_o that_o which_o with_o a_o idle_a coccisme_n he_o often_o repeat_v and_o in_o this_o place_n be_v altogether_o impertinent_a and_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v aforehand_o to_o cavil_n with_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v find_v in_o his_o book_n etc._n etc._n whereunto_o i_o will_v say_v nothing_o but_o this_o that_o concern_v the_o temper_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o truth_n of_o his_o speech_n i_o will_v not_o the_o d._n be_v a_o party_n he_o must_v not_o let_v the_o reader_n indifferent_a therefore_o judge_n the_o sight_n of_o the_o doctor_n former_a proceed_n move_v the_o refuter_fw-la 37._o sect._n 5._o add_v sect_n 6._o p._n 36._o 37._o pag._n 4._o to_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o have_v walk_v with_o a_o right_a foot_n in_o the_o path_n he_o be_v enter_v into_o be_v shall_v by_o his_o text_n have_v teach_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o two_o point_n &_o not_o choir_n contrary_a as_o he_o gee_v about_o by_o these_o two_o point_n t●_n teach_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o his_o text_n but_o the_o d._n enrage_a a●_n these_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o soberness_n as_o festus_n be_v at_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v up_o his_o answer_n much_o learning_n have_v make_v thou_o mad_a save_v that_o he_o will_v not_o ascribe_v to_o his_o refut_o any_o learning_n at_o all_o &_o therefore_o choose_v rather_o to_o say_v that_o too_o much_o wrath_n which_o be_v furor_fw-la brevis_fw-la make_v he_o so_o to_o forget_v himself_o that_o he_o wrangle_v without_o wit_n and_o against_o sense_n but_o i_o wish_v the_o reader_n consider_v whether_o the_o doctor_n do_v not_o overrash_o judge_v he_o sick_a of_o his_o own_o disease_n for_o what_o can_v he_o say_v either_o to_o excuse_v himself_o or_o just_o to_o blame_v his_o refuter_fw-la for_o soothe_v that_o no_o man_n that_o be_v in_o his_o wit_n will_v say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o preacher_n to_o explain_v his_o text_n true_a but_o if_o the_o refuter_fw-la never_o say_a it_o and_o if_o the_o doct._n can_v extract_v any_o such_o thing_n from_o his_o word_n may_v not_o the_o reader_n worthy_o censure_v he_o for_o a_o malicious_a slanderer_n 2._o he_o ask_v what_o slaunder_v the_o doct_n slaunder_v it_o be_v which_o in_o this_o section_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n be_v it_o not_o say_v he_o to_o endeavour_v the_o explanation_n of_o his_o text_n and_o to_o show_v what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o answer_v he_o no_o he_o have_v already_o explain_v his_o text_n and_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n mean_v by_o those_o angel_n be_v such_o bishop_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n as_o we_o be_v now_o he_o be_v to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n to_o prove_v hand_n the_o doct._n see_v not_o or_o will_v not_o see_v what_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n his_o former_a assertion_n 3._o he_o ask_v again_o what_o can_v be_v more_o fit_o propound_v for_o the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n than_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o two_o thing_n before_o mention_v and_o a_o little_a after_o who_o see_v not_o say_v he_o that_o the_o handle_n of_o these_o point_n be_v the_o very_a explication_n of_o the_o text_n i_o grant_v that_o these_o two_o point_n be_v fit_o propose_v to_o clear_v his_o first_o assertion_n wherein_o he_o repose_v the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n &_o if_o he_o have_v handle_v they_o so_o as_o he_o
alone_o in_o his_o diocese_n and_o so_o be_v guiltless_a of_o the_o untruth_n he_o charge_v on_o the_o refuter_fw-la he_o must_v both_o affirm_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o archdeacon_n and_n dean_n rural_a and_o cathedral_n together_o with_o the_o chauncelor_n and_o official_o which_o now_o rule_v under_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o archbishop_n with_o his_o court_n which_o be_v above_o he_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n or_o at_o least_o be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o derive_v to_o succeed_a age_n and_o yet_o if_o he_o can_v and_o shall_v performo_fw-la this_o hereafter_o it_o shall_v nothing_o weaken_v the_o refuter_n assertion_n who_o examine_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o find_v therein_o no_o intimation_n either_o of_o any_o assistant_n to_o restrain_v his_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o any_o superior_a court_n to_o rule_v over_o he_o do_v therefore_o true_o bosom_n sect._n 10._o add_v section_n 11._o page_n 43._o two_o other_o untruth_n charge_v on_o the_o ref._n by_o the_o d._n return_v back_o into_o his_o own_o bosom_n affirm_v that_o the_o doctor_n put_v the_o reins_n of_o the_o government_n controvert_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o diocesan_n alone_o as_o for_o those_o two_o untruth_n which_o he_o seek_v and_o profess_v to_o find_v in_o the_o proposition_n they_o do_v even_o as_o the_o former_a two_o return_v home_n into_o his_o own_o bosom_n for_o since_o he_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o power_n which_o he_o take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n a_o supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o such_o as_o will_v be_v both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a in_o the_o pastor_n yea_o more_o than_o popelike_a if_o they_o have_v not_o a_o consistory_n of_o elder_n join_v to_o he_o it_o be_v no_o untruth_n to_o affirm_v but_o a_o untruth_n to_o deny_v that_o he_o give_v both_o sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o the_o doctor_n take_v from_o every_o several_a pastor_n with_o the_o elder_n and_o people_n of_o every_o parish_n for_o whereas_o he_o object_v that_o because_o he_o acknowledge_v a_o superior_a authority_n both_o in_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o court_n and_o in_o the_o provincial_a synod_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o although_o he_o do_v take_v all_o authority_n from_o parish_n bishop_n and_o their_o elder_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o give_v the_o whole_a authority_n ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o diocesan_n alone_o it_o be_v but_o a_o idle_a repetition_n of_o what_o he_o before_o object_v &_o be_v before_o answer_v and_o here_o altogether_o impertinent_a because_o to_o w●●ken_v the_o refuter_n proposition_n he_o must_v show_v that_o he_o give_v not_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n to_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n although_o he_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o all_o the_o power_n that_o he_o take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n but_o whereas_o he_o fall_v back_o to_o the_o assumption_n again_o &_o add_v touch_v his_o refuters_n speech_n in_o say_v that_o he_o ascribe_v supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n that_o it_o be_v the_o supreme_a and_o loud_a lie_n and_o make_v the_o assumption_n of_o his_o cheef●syllogisme_n evident_o false_a it_o be_v a_o supreme_a and_o loud_a lie_n in_o the_o doctor_n if_o lie_n the_o d._n make_v a_o loud_a lie_n i_o may_v return_v he_o his_o own_o word_n 1._o to_o reckon_v this_o for_o one_o untruth_n imply_v in_o the_o proposition_n when_o himself_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o assumption_n of_o his_o chief_a syllogism_n 2._o to_o deny_v it_o for_o what_o can_v be_v speak_v with_o a_o supreme_a &_o loud_a cry_n by_o he_o then_o that_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o that_o not_o in_o this_o defence_n only_o but_o in_o the_o 4._o point_n of_o those_o 5._o in_o his_o sermon_n where_o he_o offer_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o divers_a testimony_n to_o what_o end_n else_o cit_v he_o pag._n 30._o ignatius_n ad_fw-la smyrn_n and_o pag._n 31._o 34._o 36._o 46._o ignatius_n ad_fw-la trallens_n show_v that_o all_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n who_o hold_v and_o menage_v the_o whole_a power_n &_o authority_n over_o all_o yea_o such_o a_o power_n as_o admit_v no_o partner_n much_o less_o a_o superior_a yea_o what_o else_o mean_v his_o conclusion_n pag._n 52._o where_o he_o say_v thus_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o calling_n such_o as_o we_o be_v have_v a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o give_v supreme_a authority_n to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n let_v the_o reader_n especial_o when_o he_o have_v read_v the_o 7._o section_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n judge_n as_o yet_o therefore_o neither_o the_o low_a nor_o the_o loud_a lie_n which_o the_o doctor_n charge_v upon_o his_o refuter_fw-la do_v belong_v to_o he_o they_o must_v go_v home_o and_o rest_n with_o their_o own_o father_n for_o aught_o be_v yet_o do_v as_o for_o all_o that_o which_o follow_v pag._n 44._o &_o 45._o either_o to_o def._n sect._n 11._o add_v pag._n 44._o &_o 45._o &_o sect_n 12._o 46._o 47._o def._n free_a himself_o from_o give_v popelike_a authority_n to_o bishop_n or_o to_o prove_v his_o accusation_n against_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o they_o make_v the_o pastor_n of_o every_o parish_n a_o petty_a pope_n well_o may_v it_o argue_v his_o wp_n good_a affection_n to_o the_o one_o and_o evil_a will_n which_o never_o say_v well_o to_o the_o other_o but_o it_o can_v neither_o clear_v he_o nor_o condemn_v they_o in_o his_o conscience_n who_o indifferent_o examine_v the_o cause_n on_o both_o side_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o doctor_n cause_n relieve_v by_o that_o subjection_n which_o he_o affirm_v and_o the_o refuter_fw-la acknowledge_v of_o our_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o their_o archbishop_n &c_n &c_n neither_o be_v their_o cause_n make_v the_o worse_a by_o the_o height_n or_o impudency_n of_o that_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o they_o give_v to_o the_o pastor_n or_o people_n of_o every_o parish_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o as_o the_o doctor_n shift_v question_n the_o doct._n shift_v the_o question_n it_o whether_o by_o our_o church_n constitution_n dioccsan_n bishop_n do_v lie_v subject_a to_o any_o high_a authority_n or_o whether_o man_n may_v appeal_v from_o they_o etc._n etc._n but_o whether_o the_o doctor_n do_v not_o endeavour_n in_o his_o sermon_n to_o convey_v unto_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n as_o his_o right_n by_o divine_a institution_n a_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o government_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a no_o less_o sole_a and_o supreme_a than_o the_o power_n which_o every_o pastor_n shall_v have_v in_o his_o parish_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o late_a disciplinarian_n as_o he_o call_v they_o if_o he_o have_v no_o consistory_n of_o elder_n to_o assist_v and_o restrain_v he_o and_o towch_v the_o parishbishop_n the_o question_n be_v this_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v or_o at_o least_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o absolute_a popeling_o as_o have_v sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a if_o he_o have_v not_o a_o consistory_n of_o elder_n adjoin_v unto_o he_o if_o therefore_o the_o doctor_n will_v leave_v his_o shift_a and_o slander_v and_o syllogistical_o conclude_v either_o from_o his_o own_o sermon_n the_o negative_a in_o the_o former_a question_n or_o from_o their_o writing_n who_o he_o impugn_v the_o assirmative_a in_o the_o late_a he_o shall_v i_o doubt_v not_o have_v good_a and_o honest_a audience_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n see_v he_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o affirm_v much_o less_o prove_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v by_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a institution_n subject_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n either_o of_o the_o archbishop_n or_o of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n it_o may_v suffice_v to_o close_v up_o the_o former_a questio_fw-la with_o his_o own_o word_n p._n 43._o what_o have_v he_o gain_v by_o all_o his_o own_o triumph_v outcry_n but_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o manifest_a untruth_n and_o for_o the_o late_a question_n since_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o their_o protestatio_fw-la touch_v the_o k._n supremacy_n that_o they_o do_v subject_n their_o pastor_n aswell_o as_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o people_n together_o with_o the_o whole_a congregatio_fw-la to_o the_o king_n authority_n &_o to_o all_o his_o majesty_n civil_a officer_n &_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o see_v also_o it_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o the_o same_o tract_n art_n 26._o but_o also_o by_o
the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n to_o be_v such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v he_o undertake_v to_o try_v pag._n 3._o whether_o those_o angel_n be_v parishional_a or_o diocesan_n bishop_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o his_o first_o assertion_n do_v crave_v the_o help_n of_o his_o assumption_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o place_n of_o one_o of_o the_o pillar_n that_o must_v support_v it_o and_o touch_v his_o conclusion_n since_o he_o tell_v we_o even_o in_o the_o former_a page_n that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a conclusion_n which_o he_o propose_v to_o be_v prove_v serm_n pag._n 55._o why_o say_v he_o now_o he_o do_v not_o express_v it_o and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o main_a doctrine_n of_o his_o sermon_n as_o every_o where_n throughout_o his_o defence_n he_o affirm_v why_o say_v he_o it_o be_v only_o imply_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o his_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o text_n but_o no_o more_o of_o these_o why_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o main_a question_n from_o which_o the_o reader_n have_v be_v hold_v too_o long_o i_o mean_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o assumption_n and_o how_o true_a it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v as_o he_o say_v prove_v by_o the_o 4._o first_o point_n of_o his_o five_o well_o be_v it_o with_o the_o d._n and_o the_o cause_n he_o plead_v for_o if_o he_o can_v 5._o sect._n 5._o as_o easy_o prove_v his_o assumption_n as_o he_o can_v say_v it_o be_v prove_v but_o as_o in_o truth_n he_o have_v no_o ground_n from_o his_o text_n choose_v of_o purpose_n to_o raise_v it_o upon_o so_o he_o go_v not_o about_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o by_o any_o word_n or_o circumstance_n text_n the_o d._n do_v not_o once_o offer_v to_o prove_v the_o point_n in_o question_n by_o any_o word_n of_o his_o text_n therein_o for_o every_o man_n certain_o see_v that_o it_o be_v every_o way_n as_o doubtful_a for_o aught_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a by_o his_o text_n whether_o the_o angel_n therein_o speak_v of_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n as_o whether_o the_o call_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v lawful_a and_o good_a and_o it_o seem_v that_o himself_o discern_v some_o defect_n in_o his_o proof_n see_v he_o forbear_v to_o deliver_v it_o in_o syllogistical_a form_n of_o reasoninge_v wherein_o otherwise_o he_o be_v not_o sparinge_v for_o he_o have_v no_o other_o syllogism_n that_o bend_v this_o way_n than_o such_o as_o arise_v from_o each_o of_o his_o 4._o point_n question_n nether_a one_o alone_a nor_o all_o the_o d._n 4._o point_n together_o do_v direct_o conclude_v his_o assertion_n yea_o the_o d._n refer_v they_o to_o another_o question_n consider_v several_o and_o a_o part_n and_o yet_o not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o nor_o all_o of_o they_o in_o one_o together_o direct_o conclude_v that_o assertion_n which_o he_o say_v be_v prove_v by_o they_o viz._n that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v here_o mean_v by_o angel_n they_o all_o sail_v another_o way_n &_o trade_n for_o the_o bringinge_v in_o of_o another_o commodity_n or_o conclusion_n viz._n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o that_o the_o angel_n or_o pastor_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n and_o such_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o function_n as_o we_o be_v which_o point_n how_o well_o he_o have_v prove_v we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o here_o for_o the_o present_a till_o he_o show_v we_o how_o he_o can_v direct_o and_o sound_o conclude_v the_o former_a from_o the_o late_a i_o still_o must_v and_o will_v affirm_v that_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n remain_v as_o yet_o unprove_v special_o since_o he_o himself_o refer_v his_o 4._o point_n which_o be_v all_o his_o proof_n of_o it_o to_o another_o question_n for_o the_o first_o assertion_n propound_v serm_n pag._n 2._o with_o which_o he_o accord_v his_o assumption_n determine_v no_o other_o question_n then_o this_o viz._n who_o and_o what_o manner_n of_o person_n be_v mean_v by_o the_o church_n but_o the_o assertion_n which_o his_o 4._o point_n do_v conclude_v be_v as_o his_o own_o word_n teach_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n pag._n 60._o the_o answer_n of_o another_o question_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o premitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o such_o diocesan_n bishop_n as_o we_o be_v or_o by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o this_o late_a be_v a_o question_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la examininge_v what_o form_n of_o government_n be_v embrace_v of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o former_a be_v the_o genuino_fw-la scripturae_fw-la sensu_fw-la touch_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o text_n he_o handle_v wherefore_o though_o 3_o though_o the_o 4._o point_n be_v grant_v yet_o the_o d._n be_v still_o prooflesse_a etc._n etc._n ●_o bishop_n barlow_n serm_n at_o hamp_n court_n upon_o acts._n 20._o 28._o fol._n 3_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o he_o have_v sufficient_o confirm_v the_o late_a yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o former_a be_v direct_o prove_v or_o necessary_o conclude_v for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o one_o of_o his_o reverend_a father_n †_o to_o who_o judgement_n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o a_o text_n he_o owe_v more_o reverence_n than_o himself_o can_v challenge_v from_o his_o refuter_fw-la how_o base_o soever_o he_o esteem_v of_o he_o do_v behold_v every_o part_n of_o the_o outward_a function_n of_o d_o bishop_n full_o describe_v in_o act._n 20._o 28._o as_o 1._o the_o preheminent_a superiority_n above_o other_o minister_n in_o the_o word_n episcopos_fw-la 2._o both_o their_o cathedral_n seat_n or_o positive_a residency_n in_o one_o city_n and_o a_o regency_n settle_v in_o their_o person_n during_o life_n in_o the_o word_n posuit_fw-la and_o their_o diocesan_n jurisdiction_n in_o the_o word_n in_o quo_fw-la viniverso_fw-it and_o if_o the_o d._n make_v any_o question_n of_o any_o one_o of_o these_o point_n he_o may_v find_v the_o first_o much_o more_o sufficient_o confirm_v they_o be_v his_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n angel_n in_o his_o text_n for_o beside_o the_o proof_n produce_v in_o the_o sermon_n itself_o to_o show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v set_v in_o a_o preeminent_a superiority_n above_o other_o minister_n he_o back_v his_o understand_v of_o the_o word_n episcopos_fw-la with_o some_o colour_n of_o reason_n from_o other_o scripture_n that_o as_o there_o be_v scopounte_n seer_n phil._n 3._o 17._o which_o express_v the_o duty_n of_o each_o pastor_n over_o his_o flock_n so_o there_o be_v 1._o pet._n 5._o 2._o episcopounte_n quasi_fw-la hoi_fw-fr opito●s_fw-la scopountas_fw-la such_o as_o must_v visit_v &_o over_o look_v both_o the_o flock_n &_o the_o seer_n which_o last_o place_n of_o peter_n the_o d._n himself_o understand_v of_o bishop_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 43._o whereas_o to_o prove_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v mean_v by_o angel_n he_o allege_v no_o show_n of_o any_o authority_n divine_a or_o humane_a that_o may_v persuade_v the_o name_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o bishop_n to_o express_v their_o pre-eminence_n above_o other_o minister_n and_o as_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o bishop_n which_o bishop_n barlow_n do_v but_o point_n at_o &_o not_o prosecute_v who_o see_v not_o how_o easy_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v to_o justify_v they_o by_o a_o like_a consequence_n of_o reasoninge_v to_o that_o which_o the_o d._n use_v for_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o a_o diocesan_n extent_n of_o jurisdiction_n &_o a_o prehminent_a superiority_n both_o in_o degree_n of_o ministry_n and_o power_n of_o ordeyninge_v etc._n etc._n be_v imply_v in_o this_o title_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v govern_v whole_a diocese_n and_o have_v therein_o such_o superiority_n above_o all_o other_o minister_n why_o shall_v not_o the_o d._n also_o believe_v that_o a_o diocesan_n jurisdiction_n and_o cathedral_n seat_n together_o with_o a_o positive_a residency_n in_o one_o city_n and_o a_o settle_a regency_n during_o life_n be_v right_o gather_v from_o these_o word_n in_o quo_fw-la uni_fw-la verse_n posuit_fw-la see_v he_o know_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v every_o of_o they_o the_o like_a jurisdiction_n seat_n residenoie_n and_o regency_n peculiar_a to_o their_o function_n notwithstanding_o the_o d._n will_v at_o no_o hand_n consent_v that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o who_o paul_n speak_v act_n 20._o 28._o shall_v be_v diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v for_o he_o take_v they_o for_o inferior_a minister_n such_o as_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v call_v preiste_n now_o if_o he_o reply_v that_o the_o church_n practise_v in_o succeed_v age_n allowinge_v unto_o bishop_n those_o privilege_n before_o mention_v help_v nothing_o to_o prove_v that_o those_o word_n of_o the_o text_n do_v conveye_v the_o same_o part_n or_o note_n of_o
a_o heap_n of_o untruth_n compile_v to_o colour_v his_o slander_n and_o the_o untruth_n of_o his_o second_o be_v no_o less_o evident_a for_o as_o the_o distribution_n of_o his_o sermon_n &_o the_o transition_n use_v therein_o do_v whole_o dissagree_v from_o his_o whole_a analysis_n here_o propound_v as_o be_v before_o observe_v so_o they_o do_v justify_v his_o refuter_fw-la against_o himself_o not_o only_o in_o the_o premise_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n which_o agree_v with_o his_o two_o assertion_n serm_n pag_n 9_o but_o also_o inseclude_v the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o of_o his_o 5._o point_n from_o all_o interest_n in_o the_o prove_v of_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n for_o as_o the_o refuter_fw-la right_o observe_v answer_n pag._n 8._o from_o the_o d._n own_o word_n serm_n pag._n 61._o that_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o first_o assertion_n be_v to_o be_v search_v for_o not_o in_o the_o last_o of_o the_o five_o but_o in_o the_o 4._o former_a so_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o transition_n which_o he_o use_v serm_n pag._n 17._o 22._o 52._o that_o the_o direct_a proof_n of_o the_o like_a function_n unto_o our_o bishop_n either_o in_o those_o angel_n or_o any_o other_o angel_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n hang_v upon_o the_o three_o middle_a point_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o first_o which_o concern_v only_o the_o person_n of_o who_o the_o ancient_a presbytery_n consist_v and_o though_o now_o he_o make_v a_o fair_a show_n of_o reduce_v the_o first_o of_o his_o 5._o point_n to_o prove_v his_o first_o assertion_n anaskevastico_v by_o disprove_v the_o presbytery_n which_o we_o desire_v yet_o even_o this_o very_a defence_n he_o make_v for_o himself_o clear_o justifi_v his_o refuter_fw-la that_o say_a he_o can_v not_o see_v how_o it_o do_v direct_o prove_v that_o assertion_n the_o proof_n whereof_o he_o search_v after_o for_o if_o in_o his_o first_o point_n concern_v lay_a elder_n he_o indeavour_v as_o himself_o acknowledge_v both_o in_o the_o 54._o pag._n of_o thi●_n and_o 61._o pag._n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n first_o and_o principal_o to_o disprove_v the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n that_o so_o by_o consequence_n the_o disproof_n thereof_o may_v be_v a_o proof_n for_o our_o bishop_n with_o what_o face_n can_v he_o affirm_v that_o this_o first_o point_n be_v a_o direct_a proof_n of_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n which_o say_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v in_o his_o text_n mean_v by_o angel_n 3._o wherefore_o for_o a_o answer_n to_o his_o question_n which_o he_o tender_v for_o his_o first_o reason_n it_o may_v suffice_v to_o demand_n the_o like_a of_o he_o that_o be_v how_o he_o can_v persuade_v himself_o that_o his_o analysis_n here_o deliver_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o genesis_fw-la or_o first_o composition_n of_o his_o sermon_n when_o he_o see_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a may_v have_v see_v that_o 4._o part_n of_o his_o five_o do_v not_o conclude_v his_o first_o assertion_n and_o that_o the_o five_o can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o his_o frame_n without_o a_o change_n of_o the_o doctrine_n first_o propound_v in_o his_o sermon_n but_o it_o seem_v the_o d._n be_v so_o well_o conceit_v of_o his_o own_o genesis_n that_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o if_o his_o refuter_fw-la can_v have_v discern_v it_o he_o will_v have_v acknowledge_v every_o point_n to_o be_v u●ry_o pertinent_a and_o direct_a &_o the_o whole_a so_o perfect_a that_o nothing_o be_v superfluous_a or_o wantinge_v a_o strange_a fancy_n when_o his_o own_o analysis_n make_v one_o of_o his_o four_o point_n to_o be_v a_o superfluous_a excr●scens_fw-la and_o more_o than_o needs_o which_o before_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o necessary_a use_n for_o in_o reducinge_v his_o 4._o point_n to_o this_o conclusion_n that_o the_o angel_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n his_o three_o point_n which_o himself_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v make_v but_o a_o consequent_a of_o the_o second_o can_v yield_v he_o no_o better_o argum●_n than_o this_o those_o ancient_a pastor_n or_o bishop_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n therefore_o they_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n wherefore_o when_o he_o have_v advise_o upon_o his_o second_o thought_n compare_v his_o own_o analysis_n with_o his_o genesis_n i_o nothing_o doubt_v but_o wink_v he_o never_o so_o hard_a he_o will_v conscience_n the_o d._n he_o self_n make_v a_o force_a analysis_n against_o conscience_n see_v though_o i_o fear_v he_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v his_o own_o self_n that_o deserve_v much_o more_o than_o his_o refuter_fw-la to_o bear_v this_o imputation_n of_o a_o force_a analysis_n devise_v against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscicence_n notwithstanding_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o his_o 5._o point_n be_v all_o of_o they_o some_o way_n pertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n though_o none_o of_o 7._o sect._n 7._o they_o direct_o conclude_v his_o first_o assertion_n which_o he_o say_v be_v prove_v by_o 4._o of_o they_o for_o his_o own_o word_n do_v show_v that_o when_o he_o first_o set_v down_o those_o five_o point_n in_o the_o proof_n whereof_o the_o body_n of_o his_o sermon_n stand_v he_o mind_v not_o so_o much_o the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n as_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o elder_a and_o late_a sort_n of_o disciplinarian_n as_o he_o call_v they_o who_o odious_a opinion_n he_o have_v interlace_v serm_n pag._n 6._o &_o 45._o in_o the_o propose_v of_o those_o question_n which_o serve_v to_o clear_v his_o first_o assertion_n i_o will_v prove_v say_v be_v pag._n 6._o 1._o against_o both_o sort_n that_o there_o be_v no_o lay-governi●g_a elder_n in_o t●e_v primitive_a church_n 2._o and_o then_o more_o particular_o against_o the_o former_a that_o in_o the_o first_o 200._o year_n the_o visible_a church_n be_v diocese_n &c._n &c._n 3._o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o p●●ishonall_a but_o diocesan_n bishop_n 4._o and_o against_o the_o late_a that_o the_o bishop_n be_v advance_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o ministry_n be_v set_v above_o other_o presbyter_n not_o only_o in_o priority_n of_o order_n but_o also_o in_o majority_n of_o rule_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o speak_v here_o in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 54._o affirm_v as_o before_o that_o he_o indeavour_v the_o proof_n ●f_n those_o point_n against_o the_o new_a and_o ●lder_a disc_a pl●arians_n and_o though_o he_o pretend_v to_o draw_v all_o these_o particular_n ●o_o one_o conclusion_n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o explication_n ●f_fw-mi his_o text_n yet_o this_o appea_n e●h_o to_o be_v a_o myere_a text_n the_o doct._n pretend_v without_o truth_n and_o shake_v hand_n with_o his_o text_n pretence_n void_a of_o truth_n see_v the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n lie_v not_o in_o this_o conclusion_n here_o set_v down_o scz_n that_o the_o angel_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o this_o assertion_n propound_v serm_n pag._n 2._o scz_n that_o by_o the_o angel_n mention_v in_o his_o text_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v such_o bishop_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call●ge_n as_o our_o reverend_a father_n be_v it_o be_v apparent_a therefore_o that_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o these_o 4._o point_n he_o shake_v hand_n with_o his_o text_n and_o lay_v by_o both_o it_o and_o the_o explication_n thereof_o and_o as_o if_o he_o be_v now_o not_o in_o the_o pulpit_n to_o explicate_v a_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o in_o the_o school_n to_o dispute_v or_o rather_o declaim_v pro_fw-la forma_fw-la he_o whole_o mind_v the_o justify_n of_o our_o hierarchy_n and_o the_o confute_v of_o their_o opinion_n which_o favour_n the_o presbytery_n neither_o can_v any_o man_n otherwise_o judge_v that_o observe_v his_o word_n before_o set_v down_o and_o compare_v together_o both_o his_o three_o first_o point_n with_o those_o 3._o opinion_n which_o he_o tex_v pag._n 4._o and_o the_o four_o with_o that_o which_o he_o reprehend_v pa._n 6._o in_o which_o respect_n also_o it_o shall_v be_v not_o great_a error_n to_o think_v that_o his_o 5._o point_n be_v in_o his_o principal_a intendment_n rather_o oppose_v against_o their_o opinion_n which_o hold_v that_o episcopal_a superiority_n which_o he_o plead_v to_o be_v unlawful_a and_o as_o he_o say_v pag._n 5._o antichristian_a then_o propose_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o 2._o assertion_n as_o he_o now_o pretend_v pag._n 54._o &_o 58._o add_v hereunto_o his_o own_o word_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n pag._n 60._o &_o 61._o where_o he_o affirm_v the_o question_n discuss_v in_o his_o sermon_n to_o be_v two_o fold_n the_o 1_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o d_o bishop_n as_o they_o say_v or_o by_o presbyterte_n of_o such_o elder_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o second_o
perpetuity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n now_o in_o question_n unto_o these_o erroneous_a conceit_n there_o have_v be_v no_o door_n open_v have_v the_o doctor_n be_v please_v to_o have_v frame_v his_o question_n in_o such_o term_n as_o most_o fit_o answer_v either_o to_o the_o first_o project_n of_o his_o sermon_n or_o to_o the_o 2._o assertion_n before_o deliver_v in_o his_o defence_n agreeable_a to_o his_o first_o project_n be_v these_o question_n 1._o touch_v the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n whether_o the_o bishop_n mean_v there_o by_o angel_n be_v such_o bishop_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n as_o we_o be_v 2._o and_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n raise_v out_o of_o his_o text_n whether_o the_o call_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v be_v of_o divine_a institution_n if_o he_o have_v rather_o stick_v close_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o two_o question_n before_o mention_v the_o first_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la be_v whether_o the_o angel_n etc._n etc._n &_o the_o second_o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la whether_o the_o call_n &c._n &c._n as_o we_o hear_v even_o now_o wherefore_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o as_o before_o he_o change_v his_o assertion_n 2._o sect._n 2._o so_o now_o he_o change_v his_o ●_z neither_o be_v it_o hard_o to_o discern_v what_o may_v move_v he_o thereunto_o for_o in_o the_o first_o his_o own_o assertion_n the_o doct._n change_v his_o question_n aswell_o as_o his_o assertion_n word_n discover_v his_o intent_n or_o purpose_n when_o he_o entreat_v his_o ref_n p._n 60._o to_o take_v notice_n what_o be_v the_o question_n betwixt_o they_o that_o so_o he_o may_v discern_v his_o discourse_n concern_v elder_n to_o be_v pertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n in_o quaestion_n wherefore_o have_v set_v down_o the_o first_o question_n in_o those_o two_o member_n before_o express_v whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n as_o we_o sit_v or_o by_o presbytery_n of_o such_o elder_n as_o they_o speake●f_n he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v p._n 61._o &_o on_o both_o side_n agree_v on_o that_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v either_o by_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o &_o so_o infer_v that_o the_o disproof_n of_o their_o presbytery_n be_v a_o direct_a proof_n of_o his_o bishop_n a_o direct_a proof_n so_o he_o say_v but_o what_o logician_n of_o any_o judgement_n will_v herein_o subscribe_v to_o his_o affirmation_n the_o question_n have_v two_o member_n the_o doctor_n hold_v the_o affirmative_a in_o the_o former_a and_o the_o negative_a in_o the_o late_a to_o prove_v the_o one_o and_o disprove_v the_o other_o be_v direct_o the_o d._n dispute_v not_o direct_o a_o double_a labour_n wherefore_o since_o the_o doctor_n susteyn_v the_o person_n of_o the_o opponent_n in_o this_o disputation_n begin_v with_o the_o first_o member_n of_o the_o question_n &_o undertake_v to_o prove_v this_o conclusion_n viz._n the_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v who_o will_v not_o now_o in_o a_o orderly_a and_o direct_a course_n of_o disputation_n expect_v at_o his_o hand_n some_o such_o medius_n terminus_fw-la as_o show_v positive_o etherwhat_o agree_v to_o the_o function_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o what_o manner_n of_o government_n be_v ancient_o practise_v or_o such_o like_a and_o if_o he_o forbear_v to_o argue_v to_o this_o purpose_n will_v not_o man_n of_o judgement_n be_v ready_a to_o think_v that_o either_o he_o have_v little_a to_o allege_v this_o way_n or_o to_o so_o little_a purpose_n that_o he_o distru_v the_o issue_n of_o his_o trial_n but_o if_o he_o shall_v fly_v from_o the_o first_o member_n of_o his_o question_n which_o he_o make_v special_a choice_n of_o and_o that_o with_o resolution_n to_o confirm_v it_o by_o unanswerable_a evidence_n as_o his_o word_n every_o where_o and_o namely_o p._n 29._o 35._o put_v his_o reader_n in_o hope_n and_o if_o in_o stead_n of_o confirm_v this_o point_n he_o shall_v bend_v the_o force_n of_o his_o disputation_n against_o the_o 2._o member_n of_o his_o question_n to_o confute_v the_o reason_n produce_v by_o the_o adverse_a part_n for_o the_o presbytery_n who_o can_v excuse_v his_o inco●stancie_n yea_o who_o that_o love_v he_o well_o can_v judge_v otherwise_o then_o that_o it_o have_v be_v much_o better_a for_o his_o credit_n to_o have_v open_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v first_o deal_v with_o the_o late_a member_n and_o then_o come_v to_o the_o former_a or_o rather_o that_o he_o will_v first_o sustain_v the_o person_n of_o a_o respondent_fw-la and_o throw_v the_o burden_n of_o prove_v upon_o his_o opposite_n as_o afterwards_o he_o do_v and_o plain_o profess_v it_o in_o the_o next_o sect_n pag._n 62._o but_o since_o he_o undertake_v the_o person_n of_o a_o opponent_n at_o the_o first_o entrance_n into_o this_o conflict_n let_v we_o see_v how_o artificial_o he_o reason_v from_o the_o one_o member_n of_o his_o question_n to_o the_o other_o his_o disiunctive_a argumentation_n pag._n 62._o stand_v thus_o either_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o but_o not_o by_o such_o presbytey_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o therefore_o by_o diocesan_n bishop_n the_o proposition_n say_v he_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o very_a question_n between_o we_o and_o the_o disjunction_n be_v therein_o by_o both_o party_n presuppose_v as_o necessary_a the_o assumption_n be_v that_o first_o point_n of_o the_o five_o which_o new_a we_o have_v in_o hand_n but_o first_o i_o deny_v that_o his_o assumption_n be_v the_o first_o of_o his_o 5._o point_n for_o when_o he_o say_v the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o govern_v by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o do_v he_o not_o therein_o oppose_v himself_o equal_o against_o both_o sort_n of_o disciplinarians●_n aswell_o those_o that_o require_v a_o presbytery_n to_o assist_v their_o parishbishop_n in_o every_o several_a congregation_n as_o those_o which_o establish_v a_o presbytery_n in_o every_o city_n for_o the_o government_n of_o many_o parish_n under_o one_o precedent_n have_v pre-eminence_n of_o order_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o presbyter_n for_o so_o he_o explane_v the_o late_a member_n of_o his_o disjunctive_a question_n page_n 60._o it_o be_v therefore_o clear_a that_o his_o assumption_n here_o be_v no_o otherwise_o the_o first_o than_o it_o be_v the_o second_o three_o or_o four_o point_n of_o his_o five_o for_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o his_o assumption_n be_v the_o first_o forsooth_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o first_o as_o he_o show_v page_n 62._o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v the_o first_o and_o thus_o he_o prove_v it_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o presbyter_n which_o be_v not_o minister_n therefore_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o govern_v by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o and_o why_o may_v he_o not_o reason_n from_o the_o 2._o 3._o or_o 4._o point_n to_o the_o like_a purpose_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o any_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n use_v government_n be_v parish_n or_o that_o any_o parish_n have_v their_o bishop_n to_o govern_v they_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o presbytery_n or_o that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v in_o power_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n equal_a to_o their_o precedent_n and_o inferior_a to_o he_o only_o in_o order_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o govern_v by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o but_o this_o be_v to_o overthrow_v his_o dichotomy_n before_o set_v down_o pag._n 54._o &_o repeat_v lib._n 2._o pa._n 41._o special_o that_o first_o distribution_n of_o his_o proof_n which_o refer_v the_o first_o point_n to_o a_o disprove_v of_o their_o presbytery_n anaskevastico_v &_o the_o rest_n to_o the_o approve_v of_o our_o bishop_n kataskevastico_v wherefore_o i_o will_v forbear_v to_o contend_v any_o long_o against_o his_o assumption_n &_o weigh_v rather_o what_o he_o say_v in_o defence_n of_o his_o proposition_n the_o disjunction_n imply_v in_o the_o proposition_n he_o affirm_v to_o be_v necessary_a 3_o sect._n 3_o though_o not_o absolute_o yet_o ex_fw-la hypothesi_fw-la and_o so_o presuppose_v on_o both_o side_n another_o the_o d_o crave_v the_o question_n &_o reason_v from_o one_o member_n of_o it_o to_o another_o but_o i_o must_v give_v he_o to_o wit_n that_o if_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a as_o he_o suppose_v yet_o this_o kind_n of_o reasoninge_v be_v on_o both_o side_n esteem_v no_o better_a than_o a_o pretty_a crave_v of_o the_o question_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o when_o he_o reason_v from_o one_o member_n of_o the_o question_n to_o the_o other_o else_o why_o may_v he_o not_o disprove_v their_o presbytery_n by_o undertake_v the_o proof_n of_o our_o bishop_n government_n with_o the_o change_n of_o the_o
assumption_n and_o conclusion_n on_o this_o manner_n if_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n than_o not_o by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o but_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n ergo_fw-la not_o by_o such_o presbytery_n as_o they_o stand_v for_o the_o proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o such_o presbyter_n and_o such_o diocesan_n bishop_n as_o we_o be_v can_v stand_v together_o and_o if_o the_o assumption_n be_v deny_v he_o be_v already_o provide_v of_o a_o disiunctive_a argumentation_n sufficient_a to_o confirm_v it_o so_o that_o he_o may_v dance_v as_o in_o deed_n he_o do_v lib._n 4._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 35._o the_o round_a round_a the_o doct._n dance_v the_o round_a between_o these_o two_o and_o need_v not_o seek_v any_o new_a prosyllo●isme_n to_o conclude_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v but_o 2._o what_o mean_v the_o d._n to_o take_v that_o for_o grant_v which_o his_o refuter_fw-la flat_o deni_v do_v he_o not_o plain_o tell_v he_o answer_n pag._n 10._o that_o though_o at_o be_v so_o as_o he_o suppose_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o elder_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n b●t_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o that_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v di●osan_n because_o a_o presbytery_n of_o minister_n such_o as_o the_o d._n himself_o co●fsseth_v deny_v the_o d._n take_v for_o grant_v that_o which_o be_v flat_o deny_v be_v then_o in_o use_n may_v be_v join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a congregation_n may_v have_v as_o great_a a_o hand_n in_o the_o government_n as_o he_o for_o so_o some_o of_o our_o opposite_n do_v grant_v it_o have_v some_o time_n and_o therefore_o the_o sole_a government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n may_v well_o f●ll_v though_o there_o be_v no_o sole_a govern_n elder_n to_o over_o turn_v they_o it_o be_v therefore_o plain_a that_o the_o refuter_fw-la disclaym_v this_o d●siunctive_a proposition_n as_o not_o necessary_o true_a and_o that_o the_o doctor_n witting_o how_o witty_o soever_o conceal_v from_o his_o reader_n both_o that_o division_n which_o be_v among_o the_o favourite_n of_o the_o hyerarchie_n some_o acknowledge_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o government_n thereof_o to_o be_v popular_a as_o archbishop_n whitgift_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o answer_n pag._n 180-182_a which_o the_o doctor_n esteem_v pag._n 41._o a_o brownistical_a and_o anabaptisticall_a dotage_n and_o doctrine_n the_o d._n contrad●cteth_v his_o own_o doctrine_n that_o contradiction_n which_o be_v find_v in_o his_o own_o writing_n since_o he_o now_o put_v the_o reins_n of_o church-government_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o rule_v as_o we_o do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o presbyter_n wherea●_n he_o former_o acknowledge_v s●rm_n pag._n 1●_n that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o bishop_n use_v the_o advice_n of_o certain_a ●ra●e_a minister_n and_o in_o church_n ●_z do_v nothing_o almost_o without_o they_o a_o thing_n now_o grow_v altogether_o out_o of_o use_n and_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o ●ome_o who_o judgement_n ought_v to_o sway_v much_o with_o the_o doctor_n that_o k●n●e_n of_o government_n which_o the_o ancient_a presbytery_n and_o their_o bishop_n exercise_v be_v now_o transfer_v to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o who_o it_o be_v due_a a●d_v to_o such_o as_o by_o he_o be_v appoint_v s●e_v d._n whitgifts_n defence_n pag._n 747_o howsoever_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o in_o the_o question_n deliver_v by_o the_o doctor_n the_o disiunct_n on_o which_o his_o proposit_a on_o express_v be_v imply_v yet_o it_o follow_v not_o ●ay_v it_o be_v a_o appara●t_a untruth_n to_o affirm_v h●t_v the_o dis●unction_n be_v on_o both_o side_n presuppose_v necessary_a which_o the_o doctor_n must_v confess_v unless_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n he_o will_v confess_v himself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o logic_n see_v his_o disjunction_n and_o question_n do_v not_o sufficient_o enumerate_v their_o opinion_n which_o have_v debate_v this_o question_n in_o general_a viz._n what_o the_o form_n of_o government_n be_v which_o be_v first_o practise_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o apostolic_a church_n so_o that_o if_o i_o will_v tread_v in_o the_o d._n step_n i_o may_v just_o repay_v he_o with_o some_o such_o marginal_a note_n as_o pag_n 47._o &_o 53._o without_o cause_n he_o have_v set_v down_o to_o disgrace_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o wit_n that_o the_o d._n and_o his_o consort_n at_o this_o day_n do_v plead_v against_o the_o discipline_n which_o archbishop_n whitgift_n &_o other_o learned_a protestant_n yea_o the_o most_o ancient_a friend_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o doctor_n mistake_v the_o question_n and_o crafty_o conceal_v the_o division_n that_o be_v among_o they_o of_o his_o own_o side_n be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o to_o be_v grant_v which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v deny_v 3._o i_o know_v that_o for_o his_o defence_n he_o say_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la acknowledge_v the_o question_n to_o be_v such_o as_o he_o propose_v but_o he_o do_v both_o the_o refuter_fw-la and_o the_o reader_n the_o more_o wrong_n in_o so_o say_v in_o deed_n when_o the_o refuter_fw-la intend_v to_o show_v that_o our_o diocesan_n bishop_n may_v be_v prove_v absolute_a popeling_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o d._n urge_v to_o cast_v that_o name_n on_o the_o parish_n bishop_n for_o which_o they_o who_o the_o d._n call_v a_o new_a sect_n do_v as_o he_o say_v stryve_v he_o than_o affirm_v that_o the_o question_n betwixt_o the_o doctor_n and_o they_o not_o between_o the_o d._n and_o we_o for_o those_o word_n the_o d._n have_v evil_o put_v in_o to_o make_v his_o own_o cause_n good_a be_v this_o whether_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o pastor_n word_n the_o doct._n change_v the_o refute_v word_n and_o elder_n or_o by_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o how_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o first_o of_o his_o two_o question_n before_o mention_v to_o be_v right_o and_o full_o deliver_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o disjunction_n he_o that_o have_v but_o half_a a_o eye_n may_v see_v the_o inconsequence_n of_o his_o reason_n special_o see_v the_o question_n express_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v more_o reference_n to_o the_o second_o quaestion_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la then_o to_o the_o first_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la moreover_o have_v the_o doctor_n forget_v that_o at_o his_o first_o meeting_n with_o this_o question_n he_o enterteyn_v it_o so_o well_o that_o pag._n 41._o himself_o the_o d._n contradict_v himself_o he_o entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o store_v it_o up_o for_o future_a use_n shall_v i_o therefore_o now_o infer_v that_o he_o contradict_v himself_o in_o say_v that_o his_o assertion_n be_v falsify_v in_o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o question_n 4._o but_o what_o need_v so_o many_o word_n to_o thewe_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o doctor_n disiunctive_a argumentation_n or_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o presuppose_a truth_n in_o his_o disiunctive_a proposition_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v grant_v for_o he_o be_v a_o doctor_n and_o can_v light_o so_o far_o forget_v his_o logic_n rule_v but_o he_o must_v know_v that_o the_o question_n which_o he_o debate_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o sermon_n must_v hold_v proportion_n with_o that_o assertion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v from_o the_o 4._o first_o point_n of_o his_o five_o see_v the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o sermon_n be_v comprehend_v in_o they_o now_o the_o assertion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o 4._o point_n be_v either_o this_o which_o his_o disiunctive_a argument_n conclude_v viz._n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o rather_o that_o which_o before_o he_o set_v down_o pag._n 58._o for_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n viz._n that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v such_o as_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o angel_n but_o which_o soever_o of_o these_o two_o he_o choose_v certain_a it_o be_v his_o question_n 4._o sect._n 4._o will_v not_o yield_v he_o any_o such_o disiunctive_a proposition_n as_o he_o now_o draw_v from_o this_o which_o he_o tender_v for_o his_o quaestion_n must_v be_v a_o single_a one_o and_o not_o compound_v of_o two_o member_n viz_o either_o this_o whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o no_o or_o rather_o this_o whether_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o angel_n or_o no_o and_o this_o last_o come_v somewhat_o near_o the_o mark_n though_o it_o miss_v of_o the_o right_a tenor_n of_o word_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v keep_v viz._n whether_o bishop_n
notwithstanding_o for_o the_o clearinge_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v to_o wit_n first_o what_o he_o include_v in_o or_o exclude_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n second_o in_o what_o sense_n their_o function_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n the_o doctor_n explain_v serm_n 6._o sect._n 6._o page_n 52._o 53._o where_o ha●ing_v say_v that_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n such_o as_o we_o be_v he_o add_v that_o be_v to_o say_v dioc●san_n and_o provincial_n bishop_n be_v superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n and_o have_v a_o singularity_n of_o prehemmence_a for_o term_v of_o life_n and_o a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n nevertheless_o the_o reader_n must_v not_o imagine_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o provincial_n or_o metropolitan_a bishop_n when_o he_o affirm_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n ●or_a in_o his_o defence_n he_o usual_o insert_v the_o word_n diocesan_n as_o lib._n 1._o pag._n 58._o and_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 139._o to_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o bishop_n who_o function_n he_o mainteyn_v to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n be_v no_o other_o than_o diocesan_n bishop_n as_o for_o metropolitan_o though_o he_o think_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 114._o that_o their_o superiority_n be_v intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o appoint_v bishop_n over_z mother_z city_n yet_o as_o well_o as_o he_o love_v they_o he_o dare_v not_o affirm_v that_o any_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o office_n or_o pr●h_a minence_n of_o metropolitan_a bishop_n for_o every_o metropolitan_a in_o his_o opinion_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 20._o 21._o be_v bishop_n the_o function_n of_o archbps._n be_v less_o behold_v to_o the_o d._n the●_n the_o function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n original_o the_o b●shop_n of_o his_o peculiar_a diocese_n and_o not_o actual_o a_o metropolitan_a until_o divers_a church_n in_o the_o same_o province_n be_v constitute_v there_o be_v a_o consociation_n among_o themselves_o and_o a_o subordination_n of_o they_o to_o he_o as_o their_o primate_n so_o that_o the_o function_n of_o metropolitan_o or_o archbishop_n be_v less_o beholdinge_v to_o master_n doctor_n than_o the_o call_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o the_o former_a he_o speak_v doubtful_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o p._n 130._o their_o superiority_n arise_v as_o beza_n suppose_v from_o the_o very_a light_n of_o nature_n directinge_v and_o force_v of_o necessity_n urge_v man_n to_o that_o course_n but_o as_o i_o rather_o think_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o other_o he_o affirm_v very_o peremptory_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 139._o 143._o that_o the_o call_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n the_o substance_n then_o of_o that_o episcopal_a function_n which_o he_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o d._n have_v place_v in_o these_o particular_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n or_o overseer_n of_o a_o diocese_n 2._o that_o they_o be_v superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n 3._o that_o they_o have_v a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n and_o 4._o a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o of_o jurisdiction_n in_o their_o place_n loe_o here_o his_o enumeration_n and_o withal_o how_o he_o omit_v therein_o and_o that_o of_o purpose_n as_o it_o seem_v four_a other_o more_o substantial_a wise_o the_o d._n omit_v 4._o substantial_a and_o less_o questionable_a point_n of_o the_o bps._n function_n but_o ye●_n wise_o and_o less_o questionable_a point_n of_o their_o function_n who_o first_o have_v the_o name_n of_o bishop_n appropriate_v to_o they_o in_o the_o ancent_a church_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v 1._o pastor_n of_o their_o church_n bind_v by_o their_o office_n to_o dispense_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o their_o people_n and_o therefore_o 2._o tie_v to_o make_v their_o positive_a residency_n in_o that_o one_o city_n or_o church_n whereof_o they_o have_v the_o charge_n 3._o assist_v also_o every_o of_o they_o with_o his_o presbytery_n or_o senate_n of_o elder_n without_o who_o advyce_n and_o consent_n in_o church-matter_n nothing_o of_o weight_n be_v do_v and_o 4._o not_o subordinate_v to_o the_o jurisdiction_n or_o censure_n of_o any_o one_o bishop_n superior_a unto_o he_o but_o of_o these_o point_n more_o he_o reafter_o lib._n 3._o &_o 4._o i_o now_o purpose_v not_o to_o insist_v on_o this_o defect_n in_o his_o lay_n down_o of_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n neither_o will_v i_o contend_v about_o the_o continuance_n of_o their_o presidencie_n or_o singular_a pre-eminence_n whether_o it_o be_v essential_a or_o accidental_a to_o enjoy_v it_o constant_o for_o term_v of_o life_n nor_o yet_o magnify_v the_o d._n wisdom_n in_o his_o cunning_a conceal_n of_o they_o as_o know_v how_o it_o wipe_v his_o diocesan_n over_o the_o shin_n in_o this_o rather_o i_o disire_v to_o give_v or_o receive_v satissaction_n whether_o that_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n and_o peerless_a power_n which_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n as_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v and_o this_o i_o the_o rather_o desire_v because_o the_o doctor_n be_v so_o high_o offend_v with_o the_o word_n sole_a that_o as_o oft_o as_o he_o find_v it_o use_v by_o his_o refuter_fw-la in_o this_o question_n he_o reward_v he_o with_o these_o or_o the_o like_a counterbuff_v at_o every_o turn_n whence_o come_v this_o sole_a i_o pray_v you_o that_o have_v so_o oft_o be_v foist_v in_o i_o fear_v great_o from_o shameless_o the_o doct._n stander_v shameless_o a_o evil_a conscience_n resolve_v to_o oppugn_v and_o d_o face_n the_o truth_n lib._n 3._o pag_n 118._o and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n god_n amend_v that_o soul_n that_o so_o often_o foy_v in_o that_o sole_a beside_o my_o meaning_n and_o my_o word_n and_o again_o pag._n 126_o o_o defile_a conscience_n which_o cease_v not_o to_o ascribe_v such_o odious_a and_o absurd_a asser●ions_n to_o i_o thus_o and_o thus_o be_v m._n doctor_n please_v to_o declaim_v why_o but_o how_o shall_v the_o word_n sole_a or_o the_o name_n of_o sovereignty_n or_o 7._o sect._n 7._o sole_a rule●e_v ●e_z so_o odious_a and_o offensive_a to_o the_o doctor_n ear_n when_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o face_n the_o thing_n be_v so_o please_v to_o he_o that_o he_o plead_v for_o it_o tooth_n and_o nail_n to_o ask_v as_o he_o do_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 20._o &_o 68_o &_o 69._o where_o do_v i_o say_v in_o all_o th●_n sermon_n that_o bishop_n have_v or_o must_v have_v sole_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n and_o whether_o bishop_n can_v be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n or_o iuri●aiction_n unl●sse_o they_o have_v all_o the_o sole_a p●w●r_n thus_o to_o ask_v i_o say_v help_v little_a either_o to_o fr●e_v he_o from_o give_v way_n to_o those_o assertion_n which_o he_o seem_v to_o abhor_v or_o to_o make_v his_o refuter_fw-la guilty_a of_o so_o evil_a and_o defile_v a_o conscience_n as_o he_o accuse_v he_o of_o nay_o if_o he_o discharge_v a_o good_a conscience_n he_o must_v confess_v either_o that_o his_o word_n do_v not_o faithful_o express_v his_o meaning_n or_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o give_v unto_o bishop_n that_o sol_fw-mi p●wer_fw-fr of_o rule_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la gather_v from_o his_o word_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o betwixt_o that_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n which_o he_o make_v the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o bishop_n superiority_n serm_n pag._n 32._o and_o that_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n which_o the_o refuter_fw-la speak_v of_o do_v he_o not_o teach_v we_o out_o of_o cyprian_a and_o herom_n pa._n 33._o 34_o that_o the_o government_n and_o the_o whole_a care_n of_o the_o church_n appertain_v to_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v one_o only_o and_o that_o his_o singular_a pre-eminence_n be_v a_o peerless_a power_n and_o eminent_a above_o all_o yea_o such_o as_o admit_v no_o partner_n pag._n 36._o &_o 46_o and_o do_v he_o not_o afterward_o pag._n 45._o 46._o 47._o undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o bishop_n govern_v in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la not_o only_o the_o people_n but_o the_o presbyter_n also_o of_o a_o whole_a diocese_n as_o have_v authority_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v they_o as_o their_o ruler_n and_o to_o censure_v and_o correct_v they_o as_o their_o judge_n do_v he_o not_o serm_n pag._n 30._o as_o be_v already_o show_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n sect_n 10._o out_o of_o ignatius_n make_v 3._o degree_n of_o minister_n deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n under_o christ_n the_o deacon_n subject_a to_o the_o
presbyter_n the_o presbyter_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n to_o christ_n and_o ask_v he_o not_o pag._n 46._o what_o a_o bishop_n else_o be_v but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o hold_v and_o menage_v the_o whole_a power_n and_o authority_n above_o all_o yea_o and_o do_v he_o not_o pag._n 30._o 31._o out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n and_o out_o of_o optatus_n and_o h●er●m_n make_v those_o 3._o degree_n answerable_a to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o levite_n place_v the_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o levite_n and_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o room_n of_o aaron_n the_o high-preist_n the_o very_a chief_a and_o prince_n of_o all_o with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v he_o deny_v unto_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o solepower_v of_o rule_n or_o say_v that_o the_o word_n sole_a be_v foist_v in_o beside_o his_o meaning_n let_v he_o weigh_v the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n and_o give_v we_o a_o direct_a answer_n to_o it_o the_o next_o time_n he_o write_v whosoever_o ascribe_v to_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n not_o of_o order_n only_o but_o of_o power_n and_o rule_v eminent_a above_o all_o and_o admit_v no_o partner_n to_o govern_v in_o fore_n externo_fw-la the_o presbyter_n aswell_o as_o the_o people_n as_o their_o ruler_n and_o judge_n hold_v and_o menage_v the_o whole_a power_n and_o authority_n above_o all_o all_o subject_n to_o he_o and_o he_o subject_a to_o christ_n he_o give_v to_o every_o b_o in_o his_o diocese_n a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sovereignty_n and_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n but_o the_o dostor_n prescribe_v ●o_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n not_o of_o order_n only_o but_o of_o power_n and_o rule_v eminent_a above_o all_o etc._n etc._n therefore_o he_o give_v to_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sovereignty_n and_o so_o power_n of_o rule_n the_o assumption_n be_v gather_v from_o his_o own_o word_n as_o be_v before_o show_v if_o he_o deny_v the_o proposition_n shall_v he_o not_o bewray_v in_o himself_o that_o evil_a conscience_n which_o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la with_o which_o be_v resolve_v to_o oppugn_v and_o deface_v the_o truth_n can_v he_o be_v ignorant_a that_o a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n of_o power_n and_o rule_v eminent_a above_o all_o and_o admit_v no_o partner_n put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o any_o one_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o rest_n as_o their_o ruler_n and_o judge_n and_o he_o subject_a to_o to_o none_o but_o to_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sole_a superiority_n but_o a_o very_a sovereignty_n or_o sole_a and_o supreme_a power_n and_o rule_v wherefore_o how_o soever_o every_o superiority_n in_o power_n or_o majority_n of_o rule_n be_v not_o a_o sole_a or_o supreme_a power_n or_o superiority_n &c_n &c_n yet_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v right_o affirm_v and_o the_o doctor_n have_v with_o check_n of_o conscience_n i_o fear_v deny_v the_o power_n of_o rule_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o bishop_n to_o be_v a_o sole_a power_n and_o touch_v our_o own_o bishop_n though_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o acknowledge_v 8._o sect._n 8._o in_o plain_a term_n that_o they_o be_v sole_a roll_a bishop_n yet_o he_o affirm_v that_o which_o will_v easy_o evince_v it_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n for_o to_o let_v pass_v what_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 40._o concern_v ordination_n that_o the_o power_n thereof_o be_v ascribe_v and_o appropriate_v to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o and_o that_o however_o by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o presbyter_n be_v to_o impose_v hand_n with_o the_o bishop_n yet_o it_o be_v then_o as_o now_o with_o we_o not_o for_o necessity_n but_o for_o great_a solemn_o etc._n etc._n to_o let_v this_o pass_v i_o say_v he_o confess_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o pag._n 192._o that_o the_o advice_n and_o assistance_n of_o presbyter_n which_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n use_v grow_v long_o since_o out_o of_o use_n because_o it_o seem_v needless_a both_o to_o the_o presbyter_n desyre_v their_o ease_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n desyre_v to_o rule_v alone_o and_o to_o take_v a_o way_n all_o show_n of_o difference_n between_o those_o ancient_n and_o our_o bishop_n who_o have_v not_o the_o like_a assistance_n of_o their_o presbyter_n that_o they_o have_v in_o former_a age_n he_o tell_v we_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 111._o that_o when_o bishop_n use_v the_o advice_n of_o their_o presbyter_n the_o sway_n of_o their_o authority_n be_v nothing_o less_o than_o when_o they_o use_v it_o not_o for_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v to_o help_v and_o adu●se_n but_o never_o to_o over-rule_v the_o bishop_n like_v as_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o prince_n who_o use_v the_o advice_n of_o his_o council_n be_v nothing_o the_o less_o for_o it_o but_o the_o more_o advise_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o late_a speech_n be_v not_o here_o to_o be_v examine_v nor_o yet_o how_o well_o the_o former_a do_v accord_n with_o the_o late_a there_o will_v come_v a_o fit_a time_n for_o it_o hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o observe_v 1._o that_o if_o a_o desire_n in_o bishop_n to_o rule_v alone_o be_v one_o cause_n why_o the_o assistance_n which_o former_o they_o have_v of_o their_o presbyter_n grow_v out_o of_o use_n it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v that_o we_o do_v now_o rule_v alone_o see_v they_o have_v no_o such_o assistance_n as_o they_o have_v 2._o neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o if_o that_o assistance_n which_o once_o they_o have_v be_v not_o to_o restrain_v they_o of_o their_o will_n but_o only_o to_o yield_v they_o that_o help_n that_o great_a prince_n &_o free_a monarch_n have_v of_o their_o grave_a counsellor_n by_o who_o they_o be_v advise_v in_o their_o affair_n of_o state_n here_o therefore_o i_o crave_v his_o answer_n to_o this_o argument_n whosoever_o in_o their_o government_n &_o proceed_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o any_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o have_v no_o assistance_n of_o any_o to_o restrain_v they_o from_o sw●●ing_v the_o matter_n as_o please_v they_o they_o have_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n or_o do_v rule_v by_o their_o sole_a authority_n but_o our_o english_a prelate_n i●_n their_o episcopal_a government_n and_o in_o proceed_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o any_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o have_v no_o assistance_n of_o any_o to_o restrain_v they_o f●om_o sway_v the_o matter_n as_o ple●seth_v they_o insinuat●th_v let_v not_o the_o d._n be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v plain_o what_o he_o close_o insinuat●th_v therefore_o they_o have_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n or_o do_v rule_v by_o thei●_n sole_a authority_n the_o proposition_n i_o suppose_v to_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o the_o doct._n will_v not_o deny_v it_o the_o assumption_n be_v already_o acknowledge_v for_o true_a by_o himself_o i_o hope_v therefore_o in_o his_o next_o defence_n he_o will_v embrace_v the_o conclusion_n and_o esteem_v it_o no_o long_o a_o odious_a and_o absurd_a asserti_fw-la on_o for_o why_o shall_v he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v that_o plain_o which_o he_o do_v close_o insinuate_v the_o rather_o for_o that_o one_o of_o his_o fellow_n doct._n d._n dove_n i_o mean_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o church-government_n pag._n 19_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o diocesan_n d._n bishop_n rule_v by_o his_o sole_a power_n say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a matter_n now_o in_o question_n and_o further_a pag._n 20._o that_o he_o may_v speak_v something_o for_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o bishop_n rule_v by_o their_o sole_a authority_n affirm_v that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v such_o bishop_n now_o no_o doubt_n the_o doctor_n will_v expect_v a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o be_v overpass_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n as_o impertinent_a to_o the_o point_n then_o in_o hand_n viz._n that_o all_o power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o because_o that_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n other_o be_v join_v with_o he_o some_o under_o he_o and_o some_o above_o he_o etc._n etc._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 42._o and_o he_o shall_v here_o according_a to_o promise_n have_v it_o and_o that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_n i_o wish_v he_o to_o remember_v that_o christ_n say_v of_o himself_o math._n 28._o 18._o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o mean_a heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o to_o bethink_v himself_o what_o answer_v he_o will_v give_v to_o one_o that_o shall_v thus_o argue_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v other_o join_v with_o christ_n the_o father_n be_v above_o he_o 1._o cor._n 15._o 27_o 28._o and_o under_o he_o be_v both_o his_o apostle_n and_o th●ir_a successor_n mat._n 28_o 19_o
eutaxie_n of_o every_o church_n depend_v in_o deed_n upon_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n but_o not_o upon_o the_o invest_n of_o the_o power_n in_o bishop_n because_o his_o second_o thought_n have_v draw_v he_o to_o distinguish_v between_o potestas_fw-la and_o modus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la lib._n 4._o pag._n 102._o &_o 1_o 17._o we_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v as_o shall_v appear_v anon_o that_o he_o con●_n the_o doct._n streyn_v his_o wit_n in_o vain_a to_o avoid_v con●_n dream_v not_o of_o this_o distinction_n till_o he_o have_v set_v his_o wit_n a-work_o to_o remove_v the_o contradiction_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la object_v against_o he_o notwithstanding_o he_o can_v with_o all_o his_o cunning_n avoid_v that_o necessity_n which_o flow_v from_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o episcopal_a superiority_n for_o if_o the_o unity_n of_o every_o church_n depend_v on_o the_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n in_o one_o during_o life_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o afterwards_o he_o explayn_v his_o meaning_n to_o wit_n that_o whereas_o there_o be_v many_o presbyter_n in_o one_o city_n yet_o there_o neither_o be_v no●_n may_v be_v in_o succeedinge_v age_n downward_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n any_o more_o than_o one_o angel_n in_o a_o church_n or_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o whole_a diocese_n how_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a and_o perpetual_a necessity_n of_o episcopal_a superiority_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o unity_n 2._o neither_o will_n the_o learning_n of_o that_o distinction_n which_o he_o now_o put_v between_o p●t●stas_fw-la &_o modus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la free_v he_o from_o place_v the_o like_a necessity_n in_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o lawful_a power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n whereon_o the_o church_n perpetuity_n &_o eutaxie_n or_o good_a order_n depend_v for_o to_o let_v pass_v that_o which_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 32._o how_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n not_o only_o do_v but_o also_o do_v consist_v in_o that_o two_o fold_v power_n no_o less_o then_o in_o a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n he_o avouch_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o power_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o they_o but_o to_o be_v transmit_v to_o they_o that_o shall_v succeed_v they_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o authority_n yea_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n sermon_n pag._n 75._o 79._o defence_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 72._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 84._o 98._o and_o 100_o that_o the_o commandment_n and_o injunction_n give_v they_o to_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a until_o the_o appear_a of_o christ_n be_v direct_v to_o they_o alone_o and_o their_o successor_n serm_n pag._n 49._o 74._o and_o that_o the_o duty_n prescribe_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n &_o authority_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 77._o and_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o he_o add_v that_o their_o successor_n be_v bishop_n only_o yea_o diocesan_n bishop_n serm_n pag._n 75._o lib._n 4._o pag._n 85._o and_o that_o not_o the_o facto_fw-la only_o but_o also_o the_o jure_fw-la ibid._n and_o that_o presbyter_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v their_o successor_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 73._o and_o that_o neither_o be_v those_o instruction_n give_v in_o general_a to_o presbyter_n neither_o do_v the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n belong_v unto_o they_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 79._o wherefore_o also_o he_o affirm_v or_o rather_o from_o the_o premise_n conclude_v that_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n and_o purposely_o write_v to_o inform_v not_o timothy_n and_o titus_n alone_o but_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n viz._n all_o bishop_n to_o the_o world_n end_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o function_n serm_n pag._n 72._o 73._o defence_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 75._o 83._o yea_o and_o further_o say_v that_o those_o precept_n 1._o tim._n 5._o 19_o 22._o be_v perpetual_a direction_n which_o be_v not_o common_a either_o to_o other_o christian_n or_o to_o other_o minister_n therefore_o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 77._o thus_o function_n it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o d._n hold_v a_o perpetual_a necessity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n have_v we_o see_v at_o large_a the_o doctor_n judgement_n now_o to_o ●ay_n all_o these_o thing_n together_o if_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o not_o so_o only_o but_o also_o the_o function_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v transmit_v unto_o and_o continue_v in_o bishop_n because_o bishop_n and_o not_o presbyter_n be_v their_o successor_n even_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o not_o the_o facto_fw-la only_o and_o if_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n as_o also_o because_o the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n viz._n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o presbyter_n nor_o be_v common_a to_o other_o christian_n or_o minister_n the_o commandment_n and_o injunction_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v inviolable_o keep_v till_o christ_n come_n be_v direct_v unto_o bishop_n only_o i_o will_v glad_o hear_v with_o what_o new_a distinction_n the_o doctor_n who_o direct_o and_o express_o affirm_v the_o premise_n can_v discharge_v himself_o from_o imply_v or_o teach_v himin_n the_o doct._n himself_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o his_o own_o distinction_n and_o have_v not_o one_o hole_n to_o hide_v himin_n by_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o perpetual_a use_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v retain_v in_o all_o church_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n his_o conjoin_v together_o timothy_n function_n and_o authority_n to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n cut_v the_o throat_n of_o his_o distinction_n betwixt_o potestas_fw-la &_o m●dus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la neither_o can_v he_o fly_v to_o that_o start_a hole_n wherein_o he_o hide_v his_o head_n his_o heel_n at_o least_o hang_v out_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 57_o lin_v ult_n when_o he_o expound_v his_o word_n be_v to_o be_v retain_v by_o meet_v or_o fit_a expedient_a or_o convenient_a profitable_a or_o needful_a to_o be_v retain_v for_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n or_o authority_n it_o neither_o in_o seek_v succour_n the_o doct._n do_v nothing_o but_o contradict_v in_o one_o pla●_n what_o he_o ●aith_v in_o a_o neither_o self_n to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a as_o a_o essential_a or_o immutable_a ordinance_n of_o god_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 102._o 147._o neither_o will_v it_o relieve_v he_o to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v pag._n 146._o that_o paul_n direction_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o tit._n be_v give_v though_o primary_o and_o direct_o to_o bishop_n yet_o secondary_o and_o by_o consequence_n to_o those_o who_o though_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n shall_v have_v the_o like_a authority_n for_o he_o flat_o seclude_v both_o the_o presbyter_n and_o all_o other_o christian_n or_o minister_n from_o all_o right_a and_o title_n either_o to_o the_o power_n itself_o or_o the_o execution_n thereof_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 71._o 72._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 79._o and_o say_v serm_n pag._n 79._o that_o it_o be_v much_o more_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n then_o for_o the_o first_o church_n in_o their_o life_n time_n to_o have_v such_o governor_n as_o timothy_n &_o titus_n that_o be_v man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o a_o preheminent_a degree_n above_o other_o minister_n 2._o if_o he_o shall_v retire_v at_o last_o to_o his_o first_o and_o safe_a evasion_n special_o fit_v to_o the_o question_n of_o ordination_n without_o a_o bishop_n serm_n pa._n 43._o viz._n that_o though_o such_o ordination_n be_v not_o regular_a or_o lawful_a ordinary_o as_o he_o say_v pag._n 37._o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ordinatie_a church_n government_n yet_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o bishop_n it_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v as_o effectual_a and_o as_o justifiable_a what_o be_v this_o but_o in_o effect_n to_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v the_o like_a perpetuity_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n as_o there_o be_v of_o sundry_a other_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o all_o eastern_a to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la for_o the_o comparison_n which_o himself_o make_v pag._n 44._o between_o baptism_n administer_v by_o one_o that_o be_v no_o minister_n and_o
ordination_n perform_v by_o minister_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n do_v evident_o show_v it_o the_o truth_n be_v say_v he_o where_o minister_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o minister_n ought_v to_o baptise_v and_o where_o bishop_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o bishop_n ought_v to_o ord●yn_v but_o though_o neither_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v yet_o be_v do_v the_o former_a by_o other_o christian_n in_o want_n of_o a_o minister_n the_o late_a by_o other_o minister_n in_o defect_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o the_o one_o so_o the_o other_o also_o be_v of_o force_n the_o church_n receive_v the_o party_n baptize_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o party_n ord●yned_v as_o a_o lawful_a minister_n now_o if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n say_v i_o then_o there_o must_v be_v a_o truth_n acknowledge_v also_o in_o these_o conclusion_n minister_n the_o d._n again_o say_v as_o much_o for_o the_o per_fw-mi petuitie_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n as_o of_o the_o function_n of_o other_o minister_n that_o follow_v viz._n that_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ordinary_a church-government_n as_o the_o right_n of_o administer_a baptism_n be_v a_o peculiar_a prerogative_n of_o the_o ministerial_a function_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o eodem_fw-la jure_fw-la even_o by_o the_o same_o law_n the_o right_a of_o ordination_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o as_o all_o church_n under_o heaven_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n be_v bind_v to_o strive_v for_o the_o establish_n &_o retain_v of_o that_o ministry_n which_o god_n have_v authorize_v to_o administer_v baptism_n so_o be_v all_o church_n by_o a_o like_a band_n tie_v to_o contend_v for_o the_o episcopal_a function_n which_o have_v right_a to_o ordain_v and_o consequent_o the_o call_n of_o bishop_n for_o ordain_v be_v as_o general_o perpetual_o and_o immutablie_o necessary_a as_o the_o office_n of_o other_o minister_n be_v for_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n i_o add_v that_o in_o the_o d._n opinion_n there_o be_v as_o perpetual_a and_o immutable_a a_o necessity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n for_o the_o order_n of_o every_o church_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o very_a judicious_a divine_n of_o wine_n for_o the_o holy_a and_o pure_a administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o whereas_o he_o allow_v not_o of_o any_o other_o form_n of_o church-governement_n then_o by_o bishop_n unless_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n where_o orthodoxal_a bishop_n can_v be_v have_v and_o that_o because_o any_o government_n whatsoever_o be_v better_o than_o none_o at_o all_o serm_n pag._n 97_o in_o the_o like_a necessity_n where_o wine_n can_v be_v have_v they_o judge_v it_o better_a to_o take_v in_o stead_n of_o wine_n water_n or_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o drink_n usual_a in_o such_o place_n then_o whole_o to_o neglect_v the_o lord_n sacrament_n or_o to_o maim_v it_o by_o a_o half_a administration_n in_o one_o only_a element_n see_v polani_n syntag._n col._n 3213._o wherefore_o as_o their_o allowance_n of_o a_o change_n in_o the_o outward_a element_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v limit_v to_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a case_n do_v rather_o support_v then_o contradict_v their_o assertion_n that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o liberty_n to_o refuse_v wine_n or_o to_o prefer_v any_o other_o element_n before_o it_o the_o d._n his_o excuse_v other_o reform_a church_n for_o enterteyn_a a_o presbyterial_a aristocracy_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o episcopal_a monarchy_n only_o in_o such_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o he_o pretend_v may_v give_v his_o refuter_fw-la just_a occasion_n to_o think_v though_o he_o affirm_v no_o such_o mattet_n that_o he_o hold_v the_o episcopal_a government_n to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la thereby_o intend_v that_o all_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o prefer_v it_o aswell_o in_o their_o endeavour_n as_o in_o their_o judgement_n before_o 167._o sect._n 6._o add_v serm_n p._n 79._o &_o defence_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 100_o 146._o 148._o and_o 167._o any_o other_o form_n of_o government_n whatsoever_o but_o there_o be_v a_o high_a pitch_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o function_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o some_o word_n that_o slip_v from_o the_o d._n in_o the_o pen_n of_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 79._o to_o wit_n that_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o welbeing_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o church_n the_o d._n do_v hold_v the_o episcopal_a function_n perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v by_o good_a consequence_n as_o his_o refuter_fw-la right_o gather_v answer_v pag._n 145_o and_o 138._o that_o see_v in_o his_o judgement_n the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v be_v episcopal_a and_o diocesan_n such_o as_o we_o be_v now_o therefore_o also_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o episcopal_a power_n or_o government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n now_o herewith_o the_o doctor_n be_v high_o offend_v and_o charge_v he_o with_o malice_n want_v of_o judgement_n and_o with_o ignorant_a mistake_n or_o wilful_a deprave_v of_o his_o say_n and_o that_o against_o sense_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 146._o 148._o &_o 167._o a_o great_a charge_n in_o deed_n but_o how_o do_v he_o avoid_v the_o consequence_n object_v for_o sooth_n to_o explain_v his_o meaning_n he_o dismember_v his_o own_o speech_n &_o cut_v asunder_o the_o knot_n which_o with_o his_o own_o tongue_n and_o pen_n he_o have_v knit_v for_o whereas_o before_o he_o speak_v joint_o as_o of_o one_o thing_n express_v by_o two_o word_n of_o their_o function_n and_o authority_n that_o it_o be_v ordinary_a and_o ●●ame_n the_o doct._n play_v fast_o and_o loose_a ti_v &_o unti_v but_o every_o one_o may_v see_v the_o sleight_n to_o his_o ●●ame_n perpetual_o necessary_a now_o to_o show_v his_o skill_n in_o play_v fast_o and_o loose_a at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o say_v pag._n 100_o and_o 147._o he_o mean_v that_o their_o function_n be_v ordinary_a and_o their_o authority_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a but_o as_o slippery_a as_o he_o be_v his_o refuter_fw-la will_v not_o suffer_v he_o thus_o to_o slip_v his_o neck_n out_o of_o the_o collar_n all_o his_o wit_n and_o learning_n can_v neither_o unloose_v nor_o cut_v a_o sunder_o that_o chain_n which_o bind_v he_o to_o a_o gross_a absurdity_n his_o word_n serm_n pag._n 79_o be_v these_o the_o function_n &_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n viz._n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n as_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o wellbeinge_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n if_o the_o doctor_n have_v mean_v so_o to_o divide_v the_o late_a part_n of_o his_o speech_n as_o he_o will_v now_o persuade_v what_o mean_v he_o not_o to_o discover_v his_o meaning_n plain_o it_o have_v be_v easy_a for_o he_o to_o have_v disjoin_v their_o function_n from_o their_o authority_n in_o his_o whole_a speech_n on_o this_o manner_n q._n d._n but_o neither_o be_v the_o function_n which_o tim._n and_o tit._n have_v at_o ephesus_n and_o in_o crete_n to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n as_o be_v ordinary_a neither_o be_v their_o authority_n to_o die_v with_o they_o as_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n therefore_o have_v he_o so_o mean_v in_o deed_n and_o truth_n as_o he_o now_o profess_v since_o there_o want_v not_o skill_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o he_o a_o want_n of_o will_n to_o speak_v plain_o unto_o the_o capacity_n of_o his_o reader_n abhor_v the_o doct._n be_v guilty_a of_o that_o imputation_n which_o he_o profess_v to_o abhor_v so_o that_o he_o stand_v here_o guilty_a of_o that_o ●oul_a imputation_n which_o elsewhere_o he_o profess_v to_o abhor_v lib._n 2._o pag._n 52._o viz._n a_o desire_n and_o intent_n of_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a i_o may_v say_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o even_a the_o most_o judicious_a as_o all_o may_v see_v that_o read_v with_o a_o single_a eye_n and_o weigh_v with_o a_o upright_a hand_n what_o he_o have_v write_v but_o to_o speak_v what_o i_o think_v he_o rather_o beli_v his_o own_o heart_n in_o hart_n the_o d._n in_o all_o likelihood_n beli_v his_o own_o hart_n say_v now_o that_o he_o then_o mean_v that_o which_o he_o never_o dream_v of_o till_o he_o have_v set_v his_o wit_n a_o work_n to_o find_v out_o some_o fly_n
holy-ghost_n who_o guide_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o function_n do_v as_o strong_o conclude_v every_o jus_o apostolicum_fw-la to_o be_v jus_o divinum_fw-la 7._o sect._n 7._o as_o it_o do_v every_o ordinance_n apostolical_a to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n and_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o divine_a ordinance_n or_o precept_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o person_n from_o who_o they_o proceed_v immediate_o whether_o from_o god_n or_o holy_a man_n authorize_v from_o god_n but_o upon_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o cause_n or_o ground_n that_o give_v strength_n thereunto_o seinge_v the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v the_o superiority_n and_o function_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v not_o only_o a_o divine_a ordinance_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o first_o institution_n but_o also_o such_o a_o ordinance_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v retain_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n viz._n the_o avoydinge_n of_o schism_n for_o which_o it_o be_v first_o institute_v yea_o such_o a_o ordinance_n as_o on_o which_o the_o unity_n perpetuity_n and_o eutaxy_n of_o every_o church_n depend_v see_v also_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o perpetual_a direction_n and_o commandment_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o common_a to_o other_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n but_o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n as_o be_v their_o successor_n not_o only_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la but_o also_o the_o jure_fw-la and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o succeed_a age_n have_v much_o more_o need_n of_o man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a authority_n to_o govern_v they_o than_o those_o church_n that_o be_v first_o plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o see_v he_o do_v so_o far_o grace_v our_o own_o bishop_n that_o he_o say_v they_o be_v authorize_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n jure_fw-la apostolico_fw-la &_o urge_v the_o conscience_n of_o his_o hearer_n both_o to_o acknowledge_v their_o function_n and_o to_o obey_v their_o authority_n as_o a_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n last_o see_v he_o do_v in_o his_o serm_n avouch_v though_o now_o he_o disclaim_v it_o in_o the_o d●f●se_n thereof_o the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a even_o for_o the_o very_o be_v and_o not_o for_o the_o well-ordering_a only_a of_o the_o visible_a ch_z &_o he_o still_o maintain_v their_o function_n to_o be_v no_o less_o necessary_a for_o the_o ordain_v of_o minister_n they_o the_o office_n of_o minister_n be_v for_o the_o baptise_v of_o other_o christian_a disciple_n see_v i_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o evident_a &_o apparent_a truth_n that_o none_o of_o they_o can_v be_v deny_v it_o be_v no_o less_o apparent_a that_o the_o d._n stryve_v in_o vain_a to_o quench_v the_o light_n that_o shine_v to_o his_o conscience_n when_o he_o indeavour_v to_o persuade_v that_o he_o maintain_v not_o the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v such_o a_o divine_a ordinance_n as_o be_v juris_fw-la divini_fw-la or_o of_o general_a &_o perpetual_a use_n for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o reader_n may_v easy_o perceyve_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o we_o by_o sundry_a syllogism_n that_o will_v carry_v good_a consequence_n and_o clear_a evidence_n of_o truth_n with_o they_o to_o confirm_v even_o from_o his_o own_o word_n that_o which_o i_o now_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n but_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o to_o use_v one_o or_o two_o at_o this_o time_n only_o and_o thus_o i_o reason_n the_o episcopal_a function_n such_o as_o we_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o their_o opinion_n which_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n must_v needs_o be_v repute_v ●yther_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a and_o temporary_a office_n as_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangeliste_n special_o appoint_v for_o the_o first_o plant_v and_o establish_v of_o the_o church_n or_o such_o a_o ordinary_a and_o perpetual_a function_n as_o that_o of_o teach_v elder_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n fit_v for_o the_o general_a use_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o word_n end_n or_o at_o least_o such_o a_o office_n as_o be_v ●f_o necessary_a use_n only_o for_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o in_o want_n of_o a_o christian_a m●gistra●e_n as_o some_o have_v esteem_v the_o governinge_v elder_n to_o be_v but_o in_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n who_o hold_v the_o episcopal_a function_n such_o as_o we_o 〈◊〉_d at_o this_o ●●y_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n it_o be_v neither_o so_n extraordinary_a or_o temporary_a a●_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n special_o appoint_v for_o the_o first_o plant_v &_o establish_v of_o the_o church_n neither_o of_o necessary_a use_n only_o for_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o in_o want_n of_o a_o christian_a magistrate_n 〈◊〉_d some_o have_v esteem_v the_o govern_n elder_n to_o be_v therefore_o the_o episcopal_a function_n such_o as_o we_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o d._n opinion_n who_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n be_v such_o a_o ordinary_a &_o perpetual_a function_n as_o be_v the_o function_n of_o teach_v elder_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n fi●ted_v for_o the_o general_a use_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o world_n end_n or_o thus_o whatsoever_o function_n be_v once_o of_o divine_a institution_n and_o still_o remein_v lawful_a and_o good_a the_o same_o be_v either_o arbytrary_a and_o at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o church_n &_o magistrate_n to_o receive_v or_o refuse_v or_o else_o be_v general_o perpetual_o and_o immutable_o necessary_a but_o the_o episcopal_a function_n in_o the_o d._n opinion_n be_v once_o of_o divine_a institution_n and_o still_o remain_v lawful_a and_o good_a and_o no●_n arbitrary_a and_o at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o church_n and_o magistrate_n to_o receive_v or_o refuse_v therefore_o in_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n it_o be_v general_o perpetual_o and_o immutable_o necessary_a and_o consequent_o the_o main_a doctrine_n of_o the_o doct._n sermon_n which_o he_o raise_v from_o his_o text_n and_o set_v down_o in_o these_o word_n the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v of_o apostolical_a and_o divine_a institution_n or_o thus_o the_o function_n of_o bps._n be_v lawful_a and_o good_a as_o have_v divine_a both_o institution_n &_o approbation_n must_v thus_o be_v understand_v q._n d._n the_o function_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v at_o this_o day_n viz._n diocesan_n &_o sole_a roll_a bb._n be_v such_o a_o apostolical_a or_o divine_a ordinance_n as_o may_v be_v call_v divinum_fw-la jus_o god_n law_n as_o be_v of_o general_a and_o perpetual_a use_n for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o because_o we_o differ_v in_o judgement_n from_o the_o d._n sect._n sect._n not_o only_o touch_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o this_o office_n but_o also_o touch_v the_o first_o original_a thereof_o esteem_v it_o to_o be_v of_o humane_a and_o not_o of_o divine_a institution_n yea_o see_v we_o deny_v the_o function_n not_o only_o of_o sole-ruling_a bishop_n but_o also_o of_o diocesan_n &_o provincial_a bishop_n lift_v up_o in_o degree_n of_o office_n and_o ministry_n above_o other_o minister_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a institution_n i_o will_v therefore_o join_v issue_n with_o the_o doctor_n in_o his_o own_o term_n and_o as_o respondent_fw-la in_o this_o question_n stand_v to_o maintain_v the_o contrary_a assertion_n scz_n that_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v viz._n as_o himself_o explain_v his_o own_o meaning_n serm_n pag._n 52._o diocesan_n and_o provincial_a bishop_n superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n have_v a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n for_o term_n of_o life_n and_o a_o p●●relesse_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v neither_o of_o apostolical_a nor_o of_o divine_a institution_n and_o first_o because_o he_o boast_v that_o he_o have_v prove_v his_o assertion_n from_o the_o text_n which_o he_o handle_v i_o will_v take_v liberty_n to_o follow_v he_o in_o his_o roving_n at_o random_n and_o to_o draw_v together_o into_o one_o continue_a tract_n whatsoever_o he_o have_v in_o any_o part_n of_o his_o sermon_n or_o defence_n thereof_o that_o carry_v any_o colour_n of_o argument_n to_o justify_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v draw_v from_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a explication_n of_o his_o text_n that_o his_o refuter_n censure_n may_v appear_v to_o be_v true_a when_o he_o say_v answ_o pag._n 4._o that_o his_o text_n yield_v nothing_o to_o prove_v his_o kind_n of_o bishop_n nor_o to_o show_v any_o such_o quality_n of_o their_o function_n as_o he_o imagine_v the_o which_o be_v do_v i_o will_v in_o the_o second_o part_n 1._o examine_v all_o other_o testimony_n or_o argument_n which_o he_o draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o justify_v his_o assertion_n that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v it_o can_v be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n since_o
it_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o though_o that_o first_o point_n of_o his_o 5._o concern_v the_o elder_n be_v as_o have_v be_v prove_v to_o this_o question_n impertinent_a yet_o will_v i_o take_v the_o like_a course_n with_o he_o therein_o 3_o and_o last_o though_o he_o cast_v of_o all_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o new_a divine_v either_o as_o incompetent_a be_v party_n as_o he_o ●aith_v or_o as_o misalledge_v by_o he_o i_o will_v prove_v they_o both_o true_o and_o right_o allege_v and_o as_o competent_a as_o any_o he_o bring_v the_o first_o part_n the_o three_o book_n chap._n 1._o contain_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o three_o chap._n of_o the_o doctor_n 2._o book_n wherein_o he_o labour_v but_o in_o vain_a to_o maintain_v the_o first_o argument_n in_o his_o sermon_n viz._n that_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n whereof_o his_o text_n speak_v be_v diocese_n we_o be_v now_o at_o the_o length_n come_v to_o see_v how_o artificial_o and_o sound_o he_o collect_v from_o his_o text_n ●_o sect._n ●_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o principal_o insi_v on_o viz._n that_o the_o function_n or_o call_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o a●_n we_o be_v be_v of_o divine_a institution_n he_o say_v pag._n 94._o of_o his_o sermon_n it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n which_o stand_v in_o this_o assertion_n that_o the_o bishop_n here_o mean_v by_o angel_n be_v such_o bishop_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n as_o we_o be_v his_o argument_n therefore_o in_o a_o enthymem_fw-la run_v thus_o the_o bishop_n mean_v by_o angel_n ap●●_n ●_o 20._o be_v such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v therefore_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o in_o a_o plain_a syllogism_n according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n def_n lib_n 4._o p._n 2._o &_o 3._o thus_o the_o function_n of_o such_o as_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o angel_n apoc._n ●_o 20._o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v be_v mean_v by_o the_o angel_n apoc._n ●_o 20._o therefore_o the_o function_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v be_v of_o divine_a institution_n here_o i_o willing_o subscribe_v to_o the_o proposition_n because_o the_o name_n of_o angel_n &_o star_n hold_v in_o christ_n right_a hand_n do_v argue_v his_o send_n and_o approbation_n but_o i_o flat_o deny_v the_o assumption_n or_o antecedent_n of_o his_o enthimem_n as_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o his_o text_n nor_o any_o one_o sound_a reason_n either_o in_o his_o sermon_n or_o in_o the_o defence_n thereof_o to_o make_v it_o good_a for_o though_o he_o will_v at_o no_o hand_n endure_v to_o hear_v of_o any_o solo_fw-la power_n of_o rule_n either_o for_o ordination_n or_o jurisdiction_n in_o bishop_n yet_o since_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o our_o bps._n be_v sole-ruling_a bishop_n and_o that_o he_o do_v underhand_o give_v such_o a_o power_n unto_o they_o and_o that_o jure_fw-la apostolico_fw-la if_o he_o will_v strong_o conclude_v the_o bishop_n mean_v by_o angel_n apoc._n 1._o 20._o to_o be_v such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v he_o must_v clear_o prove_v which_o he_o can_v never_o do_v nor_o as_o yet_o ever_o attempt_v to_o do_v that_o the_o bishop_n mean_v by_o angel_n apoc._n 1._o 20._o be_v sole-ruling_a bishop_n but_o that_o his_o own_o conscience_n may_v be_v the_o better_o convince_v of_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o reasoninge_a and_o of_o his_o abuse_v the_o text_n which_o he_o handle_v he_o be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o himself_o serm_n pag._n 52._o 53._o do_v thus_o unfold_v the_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o call_n of_o ou●_n bishop_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v diego_n cesan_n and_o provincial_a bishop_n superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n have_v a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n for_o term_v of_o life_n and_o a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n for_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o he_o have_v not_o prove_v the_o bishop_n mean_v by_o angel_n in_o his_o text_n to_o be_v 1._o some_o of_o they_o provincial_a and_o and_z other_o some_o diocesan_n bishop_n 2._o &_o all_o of_o they_o to_o be_v superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n 3._o as_o have_v a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n and_o 4._o a_o peerless_a power_n of_o ordination_n 5._o and_o of_o jurisdiction_n if_o i_o say_v these_o particular_n be_v not_o sufficient_o fortify_v than_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v leave_v naked_a the_o main_a point_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v confirm_v namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n here_o mean_v by_o angel_n be_v such_o bps._n for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n as_o we_o be_v now_o it_o be_v apparent_a to_o all_o that_o peruse_v his_o sermon_n and_o the_o defence_n thereof_o that_o he_o never_o indeavour_v to_o prove_v any_o one_o of_o those_o angel_n mention_v in_o his_o text_n to_o be_v a_o provincial_a bishop_n or_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n to_o have_v a_o peerless_a pre-eminence_n above_o other_o for_o though_o he_o tell_v we_o serm_n pag._n 18._o that_o some_o of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v mother_n city_n and_o de●_n lib._n 2._o pag._n 63._o that_o some_o of_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n be_v metropolitanes_n yet_o all_o his_o strength_n be_v spend_v in_o proovinge_a every_o of_o those_o church_n to_o be_v a_o diocese_n and_o consequent_o their_o bishop_n to_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n and_o though_o he_o speak_v some_o what_o for_o a_o preheminent_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o these_o angel_n serm_n pag._n 49._o &_o def_a lib._n 3._o pag._n 135._o yet_o in_o all_o his_o dispute_n of_o ordination_n he_o be_v silent_a of_o they_o altogether_o it_o remain_v then_o that_o we_o examine_v how_o well_o he_o have_v prove_v the_o bishop_n which_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n to_o be_v like_a unto_o our_o bishop_n in_o those_o particular_n sc_fw-la that_o they_o be_v 1._o diocesan_a bishop_n 2._o superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n 3._o as_o have_v a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n &_o 4._o a_o peerless_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n or_o as_o he_o expound_v himself_o def._n lib._n 3._o pag._n 135._o a_o corrective_a power_n over_o other_o minister_n to_o prove_v the_o first_o s●_n that_o those_o angel_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n ●_o sect._n ●_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o large_a extent_n of_o their_o authority_n over_o a_o whole_a diocese_n like_v to_o our_o diocesan_n the_o only_a argument_n that_o he_o have_v either_o in_o his_o sermon_n or_o defence_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o form_n or_o constitution_n of_o those_o church_n whereof_o they_o be_v angel_n which_o he_o peremptory_o affirm_v but_o very_o weak_o prove_v to_o be_v diocese_n proper_o proposition_n the_o doct._n only_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o angel_n to_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n be_v unsound_a in_o both_o proposition_n and_o not_o parish_n he_o shall_v say_v that_o those_o church_n be_v diocese_n such_o as_o we_o be_v over_o which_o our_o bishop_n be_v place_v wherefore_o to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n he_o must_v reason_v in_o a_o enthymem_fw-la thus_o the_o 7._o churches_n whereof_o those_o angel_n be_v bishop_n be_v diocese_n such_o as_o we_o be_v therefore_o those_o angel_n or_o the_o bishop_n there_o mean_v by_o angel_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n like_v to_o our_o diocesan_n the_o antecedent_n be_v a_o erroneous_a fancy_n forge_v by_o the_o doctor_n and_o have_v nether_a testimony_n nor_o reason_n to_o support_v it_o as_o shall_v appear_v by_o &_o by_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n be_v it_o know_v to_o he_o that_o his_o c●sequence_n also_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o weak_a and_o unsound_a and_o may_v it_o please_v he_o to_o reduce_v his_o enthymeme_n to_o a_o perfect_a syllogism_n he_o shall_v soon_o discern_v it_o for_o to_o make_v a_o supply_n of_o the_o proposition_n which_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o consequence_n of_o his_o reasoninge_a he_o must_v argue_v thus_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o such_o church_n as_o be_v diocese_n proper_o and_o n●●_n parish_n be_v diocesan_n and_o not_o parishonall_a bishop_n but_o the_o 7._o church_n in_o asia_n be_v diocese_n proper_o and_o not_o parish_n therefore_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v diocesan_n proper_o and_o not_o parishional_a bishop_n in_o which_o proposition_n so_o supply_v if_o there_o be_v a_o necessary_a truth_n then_o must_v the_o doctor_n confess_v though_o against_o the_o hair_n and_o contrary_a to_o his_o former_a persuasion_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o who_o mention_v be_v make_v acts._n 20._o 28._o &_o phil_n 1._o ●_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n because_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o philippi_n in_o his_o opinion_n be_v proper_o diocese_n
in_o his_o proposition_n to_o let_v pass_v the_o church_n of_o london_n which_o in_o q._n mary_n time_n comprehend_v all_o the_o true_a christian_n aswell_o in_o the_o country_n adjoyninge_v as_o in_o the_o city_n &_o yet_o be_v not_o a_o diocese_n but_o rather_o a_o parish_n assembly_n 1._o i_o object_v his_o own_o word_n cap._n 2._o p._n 39_o viz._n that_o as_o with_o we_o bath_n and_o well_n lichfeild_n and_o coventry_n london_n and_o colchester_n so_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n more_o city_n they_o one_o with_o the_o country_n adjoin_v make_v but_o one_o diocese_n and_o for_o instance_n in_o this_o case_n he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o hera●lea_n have_v both_o it_o and_o panion_n the_o bishop_n of_o b●●e_n have_v also_o arcadiopolis_n etc._n etc._n he_o add_v page_n 40._o that_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o scythian_n have_v many_o city_n town_n and_o castle_n have_v all_o of_o they_o by_o ancient_a custom_n one_o only_a bishop_n and_o therefore_o be_v but_o one_o diocese_n from_o hence_o then_o thus_o i_o reason_n here_o with_o we_o the_o christian_a people_n of_o these_o 4._o city_n coventry_n litchfield_n colch●ster_n &_o london_n with_o their_o country_n or_o shire_n adjoin_v do_v not_o make_v each_o of_o they_o a_o several_a diocese_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n in_o the_o city_n of_o heraclea_n panion_n bize_n and_o arcadiapolis_n and_o in_o the_o several_a city_n of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o scythian_n every_o church_n therefore_o who_o circuit_n contain_v a_o whole_a city_n with_o the_o country_n adjoin_v be_v not_o a_o diocese_n and_o consequent_o he_o wrangle_v against_o the_o truth_n know_v to_o his_o own_o conscience_n when_o he_o ask_v pag._n 47._o how_o be_v it_o possede_v that_o those_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v diocese_n which_o contain_v ample_a city_n with_o the_o country_n such_o as_o we_o call_v shire_n belong_v to_o they_o and_o to_o manifest_v the_o more_o full_o the_o falsehood_n of_o his_o proposition_n 6._o sect._n 6._o i_o here_o renew_v that_o reason_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la object_v answer_n pag._n 54._o against_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o proposition_n by_o he_o frame_v sc_fw-la because_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o every_o one_o of_o those_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o diverse_a several_a ordinary_a assembly_n all_o of_o they_o depend_v upon_o some_o one_o as_o the_o chief_a without_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n a_o part_n in_o themselves_o for_o since_o every_o of_o our_o diocesan_n church_n be_v so_o divide_v till_o this_o appear_v how_o can_v he_o conclude_v every_o of_o those_o church_n to_o be_v proper_o such_o a_o diocese_n as_o be_v the_o diocese_n subject_v to_o our_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o point_n that_o he_o must_v prove_v as_o be_v before_o show_v notwithstanding_o the_o d._n in_o his_o reply_n p._n 47._o &_o 48._o insult_v over_o his_o ref_n in_o this_o manner_n be_v this_o the_o denial_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v not_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o conclusion_n a_o evidence_n that_o the_o answerer_n be_v confound_v &_o be_v not_o confusion_n a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o he_o write_v against_o his_o conscience_n resolve_v not_o to_o be_v persuade_v though_o his_o conscience_n be_v convict_v whereunto_o i_o answer_v 1._o if_o the_o refuter_n word_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o conclusion_n assertion_n either_o the_o d._n rayl_v &_o slaunder_v or_o else_o contradict_v himself_o &_o his_o main_a assertion_n then_o in_o the_o d._n opinion_n a_o diocese_n and_o a_o church_n divide_v into_o diverse_a several_a ordinary_a assembly_n etc._n etc._n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n so_o that_o none_o other_o church_n then_o that_o which_o be_v so_o divide_v can_v proper_o or_o true_o be_v call_v a_o diocese_n and_o consequent_o when_o he_o say_v pag._n 30._o that_o though_o those_o church_n have_v not_o be_v divide_v into_o several_a congregation_n yet_o have_v they_o each_o of_o they_o be_v diocese_n his_o meaning_n must_v be_v this_o q._n d._n though_o none_o of_o those_o church_n have_v be_v a_o diocese_n yet_o each_o of_o they_o have_v be_v a_o diocese_n in_o like_a manner_n when_o he_o affirm_v pag._n 69._o that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o church_n be_v not_o divide_v into_o several_a parish_n his_o meaning_n must_v be_v this_o and_o no_o other_o q._n d._n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o church_n be_v no_o diocese_n which_o be_v to_o contradict_v and_o condemn_v of_o falsehood_n the_o very_a main_a assertion_n which_o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o sermon_n he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v and_o when_o he_o argue_v there_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v not_o divide_v into_o several_a parish_n and_o therefore_o the_o presbytery_n in_o their_o day_n be_v appoint_v not_o to_o parish_n but_o to_o diocese_n his_o purpose_n be_v to_o reason_n very_o profound_o to_o this_o effect_n q._n d._n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v no_o diocese_n &_o therefore_o in_o their_o time_n the_o presbytery_n be_v appoint_v unto_o diocese_n behold_v we_o what_o the_o doctor_n have_v gain_v in_o avouch_v his_o refuters_n reason_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o denial_n of_o the_o conclusion_n be_v not_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o assertion_n clear_a evidence_n that_o it_o be_v himself_o that_o be_v confound_v and_o that_o write_v against_o his_o conscience_n as_o one_o resolve_v not_o to_o be_v persuade_v though_o his_o conscience_n be_v convict_v 2._o for_o to_o return_v to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n as_o the_o d._n know_v well_o enough_o that_o his_o refuter_n word_n be_v bend_v against_o the_o consequence_n of_o his_o argument_n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v clear_o nothing_o else_o then_o this_o q._n d._n though_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o every_o of_o these_o 7._o church_n be_v a_o great_a and_o ample_a city_n etc._n etc._n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o be_v diocese_n such_o as_o we_o be_v because_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o every_o of_o those_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o divers_a several_a ordinary_a assembly_n etc._n etc._n and_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n the_o proposition_n of_o his_o argument_n consider_v in_o the_o sense_n before_o explayn_v be_v still_o to_o be_v reject_v to_o wit_n because_o to_o make_v any_o church_n diocese_n such_o as_o we_o be_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o show_v that_o their_o circuit_n comprehend_v a_o city_n and_o the_o country_n adjoin_v he_o must_v also_o demonstrate_v those_o 3._o branch_n which_o he_o observe_v in_o the_o refut_o word_n viz._n 1._o that_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o diverse_a ordinary_a assembly_n 2._o that_o all_o of_o they_o depend_v upon_o some_o one_o as_o the_o chief_a 3._o and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o any_o of_o they_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n a_o part_n in_o themselves_o but_o the_o doctor_n not_o willing_o direct_o to_o contradict_v his_o refuter_fw-la 7._o sect._n 7._o in_o these_o particular_n pervert_v the_o drift_n of_o his_o word_n as_o if_o he_o have_v intend_v to_o prove_v that_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v not_o diocese_n because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o divide_v etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o forget_v what_o part_n himself_o and_o his_o refuter_fw-la do_v bear_v in_o this_o controversye_n he_o urge_v he_o as_o if_o he_o be_v the_o opponent_n to_o prove_v his_o assertion_n hold_v i●_n sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o deny_v they_o till_o proof_n be_v make_v of_o they_o yet_o know_v forsooth_o that_o none_o of_o his_o opposite_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v any_o of_o they_o &_o desyre_v from_o his_o soul_n to_o satisfy_v they_o in_o this_o cause_n as_o brethren_n he_o will_v brief_o disprove_v they_o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o he_o will_v have_v be_v so_o kind_a to_o a_o adversary_n so_o froward_a yea_o convict_a and_o resolve_v as_o he_o say_v not_o to_o be_v persuade_v perhaps_o he_o take_v this_o pain_n for_o some_o other_o sake_n of_o who_o he_o have_v better_a hope_n well_o let_v we_o listen_v to_o his_o discourse_n and_o have_v first_o observe_v what_o he_o undertake_v to_o disprove_v we_o will_v way_n the_o force_n of_o his_o argument_n with_o as_o indifferent_a a_o hand_n as_o we_o can_v the_o first_o point_n wherein_o he_o contradict_v his_o refuter_fw-la be_v that_o he_o say_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o every_o one_o of_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v divide_v into_o diverse_a several_a ordinary_a assembly_n the_o which_o if_o he_o will_v disprove_v he_o must_v make_v it_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o truth_n that_o every_o of_o those_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o diverse_a ordinary_a assembly_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o have_v to_o say_v
write_n but_o by_o tradition_n it_o be_v strange_a a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n for_o the_o well-orderinge_a of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o world_n end_n shall_v be_v commit_v to_o such_o a_o happ-hazzard_a 2._o and_o how_o have_v the_o church_n inform_v the_o doctor_n of_o their_o understand_v have_v he_o receive_v it_o also_o by_o tradition_n or_o from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o himself_o the_o d._n first_o reason_n confute_v by_o himself_o lord_n worthy_n in_o all_o age_n why_o do_v he_o not_o either_o quote_v we_o their_o book_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v it_o or_o give_v we_o the_o catalogue_n of_o such_o as_o have_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n convey_v it_o to_o he_o till_o he_o have_v give_v satisfaction_n in_o these_o particular_n let_v he_o not_o think_v but_o his_o reader_n will_v deem_v his_o first_o reason_n to_o be_v a_o speech_n void_a of_o reason_n yea_o a_o monstrous_a untruth_n confute_v by_o himself_o as_o shall_v well_o appear_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o reason_n follow_v his_o second_o reason_n he_o lay_v down_o thus_o saying_n second_o because_o that_o division_n of_o church_n which_o be_v 300._o or_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n with_o their_o limit_n and_o circuit_n be_v ordinary_o the_o same_o which_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n as_o before_o have_v be_v testify_v by_o divers_a ancient_a counsel_n ordinary_o and_o from_o the_o beginning_n so_o he_o say_v in_o deed_n but_o 1._o do_v any_o council_n that_o he_o have_v allege_v pag._n 22._o &_o 37._o or_o elsewhere_o testify_v the_o circuit_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o plant_n by_o the_o apostle_n the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o time_n be_v not_o all_o the_o question_n in_o those_o counsel_n of_o country_n parish_n or_o such_o part_n of_o any_o country_n as_o neither_o desire_a to_o have_v a_o bishop_n or_o be_v challenge_v of_o diverse_a bishop_n the_o beginning_n therefore_o whereof_o they_o speak_v must_v be_v take_v for_o the_o time_n of_o erect_v church_n in_o country_n village_n and_o subordinate_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n adjoyninge_v neither_o yet_o do_v they_o ascribe_v this_o to_o any_o ordinance_n or_o intention_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o city_n but_o to_o ancient_a custom_n as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o ephesin_n council_n show_v which_o he_o have_v set_v down_o can._n 2._o pag._n 37._o ratify_v by_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o canon_n false_o call_v canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o but_o why_o say_v he_o the_o circuit_n be_v ordinary_o the_o same_o mean_v he_o it_o be_v no_o common_a use_n to_o alter_v they_o or_o that_o it_o be_v against_o order_n and_o unlawful_a it_o can_v be_v the_o late_a since_o he_o confess_v pag._n 23._o that_o if_o there_o be_v cause_n sc_fw-la for_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o charge_n and_o number_n of_o people_n etc._n etc._n the_o circuit_n of_o diocese_n be_v lessen_v &_o new_a bishopricke_n erect_v behold_v then_o how_o worthy_o the_o d._n reason_v the_o division_n of_o church_n with_o their_o circuit_n remain_v till_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o same_o which_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o erect_v church_n in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o any_o diocese_n and_o subordinatinge_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n adjoyninge_v unless_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o charge_n require_v the_o circuit_n to_o be_v lessen_v &_o a_o new_a bishopric_n to_o be_v establish_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v shall_v have_v the_o same_o circuit_n before_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n that_o they_o have_v after_o may_v not_o the_o contrary_a with_o much_o more_o probability_n be_v thus_o argue_v when_o the_o charge_n of_o a_o whole_a diocese_n after_o the_o distribution_n of_o parish_n grow_v over_o great_a for_o one_o bishop_n &_o the_o number_n of_o people_n in_o some_o part_n desire_v to_o have_v a_o new_a bishop_n the_o circuit_n of_o church_n or_o diocese_n be_v alter_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v never_o intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o the_o father_n of_o those_o time_n be_v ignorant_a of_o any_o such_o intention_n that_o the_o circuit_n of_o every_o church_n shall_v always_o continue_v the_o same_o aswell_o when_o all_o in_o city_n and_o country_n be_v convert_v as_o when_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o three_o reason_n three_o say_v he_o because_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o beza_n and_o testify_v by_o d._n reynoldes_n and_o other_o that_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o church_n do_v usual_o fellow_n the_o division_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n in_o so_o much_o that_o those_o country_n that_o be_v subject_v to_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n exercise_v in_o any_o city_n be_v also_o subject_a ordinary_o to_o the_o ec●lesiasticall_a etc._n etc._n be_v not_o the_o doctor_n plenty_n think_v you_o turn_v into_o mere_a penury_n when_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n faylinge_v he_o he_o be_v glad_a to_o seek_v relief_n at_o their_o hand_n who_o judgement_n otherwise_o ordinary_o and_o usual_o he_o reject_v and_o yet_o alas_o for_o pity_v they_o who_o he_o mean_v can_v yield_v he_o any_o comfort_n for_o what_o say_v they_o forsooth_o that_o in_o the_o distribution_n of_o diocese_n province_n and_o patriarchall_a preeminence_n the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a follow_v the_o civil_a and_o when_o do_v the_o church_n take_v up_o this_o course_n do_v they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n begin_v it_o or_o intend_v any_o such_o matter_n no_o it_o be_v think_v a_o convenient_a course_n by_o the_o bishop_n after_o the_o apostle_n day_n for_o the_o better_a manage_n of_o church-cause_n in_o their_o synod_n and_o meeting_n that_o as_o for_o civil_a justice_n so_o also_o for_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n recourse_n shall_v be_v have_v to_o the_o city_n and_o shire-towne_n neither_o be_v this_o order_n universal_a or_o perpetual_a as_o the_o doctor_n himself_o acknowledge_v in_o pergamus_n and_o thyatira_n pag._n 63._o yea_o he_o affirm_v that_o by_o ancient_a custom_n the_o whole_a nation_n of_o scythian_n have_v many_o city_n town_n and_o castle_n make_v but_o one_o diocese_n and_o that_o the_o church_n throughout_o a_o large_a province_n be_v but_o part_n of_o one_o paraecia_fw-la or_o diocese_n as_o may_v be_v see_v pag._n 10._o &_o 40._o of_o this_o his_o defence_n wherefore_o this_o reason_n of_o he_o do_v also_o confure_n and_o not_o confirm_v his_o fantastical_a conceit_n of_o the_o apostle_n intention_n and_o it_o argue_v he_o speak_v direct_o against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o conscience_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n unto_o our_o age_n have_v so_o understand_v as_o he_o do_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n wherefore_o since_o he_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n for_o his_o bold_a affirmation_n that_o the_o circuit_n of_o each_o church_n in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o first_o founder_n be_v the_o same_o before_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n that_o it_o be_v after_o we_o may_v well_o take_v his_o conclusion_n which_o he_o infer_v thereupon_o to_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o sand_n of_o his_o own_o vain_a imagination_n viz._n that_o though_o those_o church_n have_v not_o be_v divide_v into_o several_a congregation_n yet_o have_v they_o each_o of_o they_o be_v diocese_n but_o now_o to_o return_v to_o the_o point_n from_o which_o he_o have_v long_o wander_v 50._o sect._n 11._o add_v sect_n 6._o page_n 50._o at_o his_o pleasure_n to_o little_a purpose_n he_o add_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o revelation_n it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o they_o contain_v diverse_a congregation_n if_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a then_o i_o hope_v his_o argument_n whereon_o he_o build_v be_v more_o than_o probability_n even_o firm_a and_o invincible_a demonstration_n but_o if_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o shadow_n of_o probability_n in_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v allege_v no_o man_n can_v just_o blame_v his_o refuter_fw-la if_o he_o say_v it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a the_o doctor_n be_v deceive_v and_o seek_v to_o deceive_v with_o his_o vain_a brag_v of_o prove_v what_o he_o avouch_v let_v we_o therefore_o examine_v his_o best_a probability_n the_o first_o be_v that_o when_v paul_n have_v continue_v but_o two_o year_n at_o ephesus_n the_o holy_a ghost_n testify_v act._n 19_o 10._o that_o all_o which_o inhabit_v asia_n so_o proper_o call_v do_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v both_o place_v many_o presbyter_n among_o they_o and_o continue_v with_o they_o for_o the_o space_n
those_o seven_o church_n 2._o if_o the_o church_n both_o of_o city_n &_o country_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o b._n of_o the_o city_n 3._o if_o the_o parish_n both_o of_o city_n &_o country_n have_v neither_o bishop_n nor_o presbytery_n but_o presbyter_n several_o assign_v to_o they_o 4._o if_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o country_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n &_o not_o only_o they_o but_o also_o the_o rural_a bishop_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o authority_n all_o which_o i_o have_v by_o most_o evident_a argument_n and_o testimony_n prove_v already_o then_o do_v the_o several_a congregation_n and_o parish_n which_o i_o have_v also_o prove_v be_v all_o but_o member_n of_o one_o body_n depend_v upon_o the_o chief_a church_n in_o the_o city_n as_o their_o head_n neither_o have_v they_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n whereof_o they_o speak_v as_o i_o have_v also_o prove_v before_o all_o this_o wind_n shake_v no_o corn_n a_o short_a answer_n will_v serve_v to_o all_o these_o particular_n 1._o the_o matter_n hang_v yet_o in_o question_n whether_o every_o of_o those_o church_n do_v include_v at_o least_o intentional_o the_o whole_a city_n and_o the_o country_n which_o afterwards_o be_v subject_v to_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o city_n also_o whither_o parish_n be_v multiply_v &_o presbyter_n assign_v to_o they_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o suppose_v yea_o the_o contrary_a of_o this_o for_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o d_o as_o be_v before_o observe_v 2._o as_o for_o those_o argument_n and_o testimony_n whereby_o he_o say_v he_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o particulars_n which_o he_o hear●_n assume_v for_o undoubted_a truth_n they_o be_v every_o mother_n son_n of_o they_o of_o under_o age_n &_o neither_o of_o growth_n nor_o strength_n to_o bear_v out_o the_o matter_n and_o sway_v the_o conscience_n of_o any_o that_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o question_n the_o reader_n will_v remember_v that_o the_o point_n here_o deny_v be_v that_o there_o be_v in_o every_o of_o these_o church_n many_o congregation_n which_o depend_v upon_o one_o as_o chief_a without_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o themselves_o all_o his_o testimony_n be_v as_o appeareth_z cap._n 2._o of_o this_o defence_n far_o beyond_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o first_o 200_o year_n the_o counterfeit_n epistle_n of_o cl●mens_n and_o anicetus_n except_v which_o he_o cit_v cap._n 2._o sect_n 3._o yet_o need_v i_o not_o except_v they_o see_v the_o first_o author_n of_o they_o be_v a_o very_a novice_n in_o respect_n of_o true_a antiquity_n as_o the_o doctor_n well_o know_v wherefore_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o valour_n of_o the_o doctor_n best_a proof_n in_o this_o enthymem_fw-la draw_v out_o of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o thus_o it_o appear_v by_o counsel_n and_o father_n after_o constantine_n time_n or_o a_o li●le_n before_o that_o parish_n in_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v be_v subject_v to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n and_o member_n of_o one_o diocesan_n body_n ergo_fw-la at_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o revelation_n there_o be_v in_o every_o of_o the_o 7._o church_n diverse_a congregation_n which_o depend_v on_o one_o chief_a without_o prower_n of_o government_n in_o themselves_o at_o length_n the_o doctor_n come_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o assumption_n 54._o sect._n 23._o add_v sect_n 7._o def_n pag._n ●2_n 54._o which_o affirm_v as_o the_o refuter_fw-la true_o gather_v from_o his_o own_o express_a word_n serm_n pag._n 18._o that_o the_o 7._o church_n of_o asia_n be_v great_a and_o ample_a city_n and_o not_o the_o city_n alone_o but_o also_o the_o country_n adjoyning●_n and_o because_o his_o refuter_fw-la tell_v he_o pag._n 54._o it_o be_v faulty_a both_o in_o word_n and_o matter_n the_o doctor_n charge_v he_o to_o cavil_n egregious_o but_o be_v not_o slanderer_n not_o the_o refut_o but_o the_o d._n be_v the_o caviller_n or_o at_o least_o slanderer_n the_o d._n rather_o a_o egregious_a caviller_n at_o least_o a_o notable_a slanderer_n if_o his_o refuter_n censure_v be_v true_a first_o for_o the_o word_n i_o demand_v again_o as_o his_o refuter_fw-la do_v before_o who_o ever_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v a_o great_a city_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o city_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o church_n a_o other_o the_o d._n can_v deny_v the_o late_a but_o he_o labour_v to_o excuse_v the_o former_a if_o say_v he_o he_o discern_v the_o speech_n which_o i_o use_v to_o be_v unproper_a have_v he_o not_o so_o much_o neither_o ar●_n i_o mean_v rhetoric_n or_o logic_n nor_o grace_n i_o mean_v charity_n as_o either_o to_o conceyve_v i_o to_o have_v speak_v by_o a_o trope_n or_o to_o explain_v my_o speech_n by_o such_o a_o enunciation_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n do_v require_v why_o how_o can_v the_o d._n expect_v so_o much_o either_o art_n or_o grace_n at_o their_o hand_n who_o he_o esteem_v to_o be_v very_a weakling_n for_o learning_n or_o judgement_n and_o in_o affection_n whole_o alienate_v from_o our_o church-governor_n and_o such_o as_o be_v full_a of_o odious_a censure_n etc._n etc._n will_v not_o without_o prejudice_n or_o partiality_n read_v what_o be_v true_o say_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o church_n for_o so_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o pag._n 1._o 3._o 9_o 10._o of_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o sermon_n if_o therefore_o himself_o discern_v his_o own_o speech_n to_o be_v improper_a have_v he_o not_o so_o much_o i_o say_v not_o rhetoric_n or_o logic_n to_o explain_v his_o meaning_n but_o grace_n that_o be_v prudence_n or_o charity_n to_o prevent_v both_o all_o mistakinge_a in_o the_o simple_a reader_n and_o all_o cavil_v in_o his_o odious-censuring_a opposite_n by_o a_o plain_a and_o naked_a delivery_n of_o his_o true_a meaning_n have_v he_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v to_o prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v proper_o diocese_n he_o may_v have_v conceive_v that_o his_o reader_n of_o all_o sort_n will_v expect_v proper_a and_o not_o improper_a speech_n to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n for_o how_o hang_v this_o reason_n together_o in_o the_o doctor_n logic_n the_o church_n be_v improper_o the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v therefore_o stout_o the_o doct._n reason_v stout_o they_o be_v proper_o diocese_n mutato_fw-la genere_fw-la predicationis_fw-la non_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la it_o be_v a_o poor_a defence_n therefore_o for_o he_o to_o demand_v as_o he_o do_v who_o ever_o hear_v that_o star_n be_v angel_n or_o that_o the_o cup_n be_v blood_n because_o it_o be_v say_v in_o his_o text_n the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n and_o christ_n elsewhere_o say_v this_o cup_n be_v my_o blood_n if_o he_o can_v show_v any_o text_n either_o of_o scripture_n or_o any_o author_n old_a or_o new_a that_o have_v say_v as_o he_o do_v we_o will_v cease_v to_o wonder_v at_o the_o strangeness_n of_o his_o speech_n but_o when_o he_o further_o demand_v whither_o when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n and_o the_o country_n his_o refuter_fw-la can_v not_o understand_v he_o as_o speak_v after_o that_o most_o usual_a metonymy_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n in_o the_o city_n and_o country_n nor_o yet_o explain_v his_o word_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n contain_v in_o his_o speech_n do_v lead_v he_o i_o answer_v in_o the_o refuter_n behalf_n he_o do_v well_o perceive_v by_o the_o doctor_n word_n follow_v where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o intent_n and_o hope_n the_o apostle_n have_v to_o convert_v the_o whole_a people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o presbyter_n which_o they_o ordain_v in_o every_o city_n etc._n etc._n that_o if_o he_o have_v limit_v his_o speech_n only_o to_o those_o few_o that_o be_v already_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n the_o doctor_n may_v have_v have_v a_o just_a quarrel_n against_o he_o for_o pervert_v his_o meaning_n wherefore_o though_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o his_o word_n as_o he_o have_v good_a cause_n yet_o he_o stay_v not_o there_o but_o contradict_v also_o the_o matter_n or_o meaning_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v explain_v his_o word_n so_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n do_v lead_v he_o viz._n that_o those_o 7._o church_n contain_v the_o people_n of_o those_o 7_o city_n whether_o already_o convert_v or_o to_o be_v convert_v hereafter_o by_o the_o bishop_n &_o presbyter_n of_o each_o city_n for_o so_o he_o seem_v to_o interpret_v himself_o serm_n pag._n 19_o but_o he_o dare_v not_o in_o plain_a term_n so_o affirm_v for_o then_o the_o simple_a of_o his_o reader_n may_v have_v reply_v that_o those_o church_n for_o the_o present_a contain_v no_o more_o of_o the_o people_n in_o city_n or_o country_n than_o such_o as_o be_v already_o bring_v to_o
the_o ●aith_n which_o be_v as_o his_o refuter_fw-la true_o avouch_v neither_o can_v the_o doctor_n deny_v it_o but_o a_o few_o like_v to_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v in_o london_n and_o the_o town_n about_o it_o in_o q._n mary_n day_n or_o which_o now_o be_v in_o paris_n or_o some_o city_n in_o france_n wherefore_o to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o church_n be_v great_a city_n &c._n &c._n may_v better_o serve_v his_o turn_n as_o the_o refuter_fw-la judge_v to_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a that_o they_o may_v think_v the_o people_n of_o those_o church_n to_o be_v well_o near_o if_o not_o altogether_o as_o many_o rain_n the_o doct._n use_v cunning_a in_o his_o purgation_n but_o yet_o in_o rain_n as_o the_o city_n contain_v now_o the_o d._n to_o purge_v himself_o from_o so_o foul_a a_o imputation_n thank_v god_n that_o he_o ●s_v free_a both_o from_o desire_n and_o intent_n of_o dazal_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a but_o this_o notwithstanding_o let_v the_o reader_n observe_v the_o cunning_n which_o he_o use_v in_o this_o purgation_n the_o intent_n of_o dazzle_v he_o disclaym_v but_o he_o contradict_v not_o that_o which_o his_o re●_n object_v uz._n that_o he_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n to_o think_v that_o those_o church_n contain_v as_o many_o people_n as_o the_o city_n do_v only_o he_o quarrel_v with_o he_o pag._n 54._o for_o strain_v his_o word_n to_o causeless_a the_o d._n quarrel_n be_v fond_a and_o causeless_a this_o meaning_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o all_o the_o people_n in_o the_o city_n and_o country_n have_v be_v a●_n that_o time_n christian_n which_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o causeless_a quarrel_n &_o a_o fond_a cavil_n see_v in_o the_o d_o logic_n &_o divinity_n here_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o speech_n all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n &_o country_n be_v christian_n and_o the_o church_n contain_v within_o her_o circuit_n all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n for_o though_o he_o reject_v the_o former_a as_o absurd_a yet_o he_o maintain_v the_o latter_a for_o a_o sound_a position_n else_o why_o do_v he_o not_o interpret_v himself_o to_o have_v speak_v according_a to_o a_o usual_a metonymy_n of_o the_o christian_n people_n only_a q._n d._n the_o 7._o church_n be_v the_o christian_n which_o then_o inhabit_v the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v why_o do_v he_o rather_o choose_v pag._n 53._o to_o explain_v his_o meaning_n thus_o the_o church_n be_v that_o be_v contain_v not_o only_o the_o city_n but_o the_o country_n and_o to_o illustrate_v his_o interpretation_n by_o such_o a_o instance_n as_o this_o a_o man_n be_v not_o only_a body_n but_o soul_n also_o that_o be_v man_n consist_v of_o body_n and_o soul_n or_o whole_a man_n contain_v these_o two_o part_n for_o if_o every_o of_o the_o 7._o church_n do_v so_o contain_v city_n and_o country_n or_o consist_v of_o those_o two_o part_n as_o a_o man_n contain_v or_o consist_v of_o soul_n and_o body_n then_o both_o the_o whole_a city_n and_o the_o whole_a country_n adjoin_v must_v necessary_o concur_v to_o the_o very_a essence_n or_o be_v of_o the_o church_n &_o consequent_o in_o his_o estimation_n and_o understanding_n none_o of_o those_o church_n do_v consist_v of_o or_o contain_v only_o a_o few_o of_o the_o people_n as_o a_o part_n of_o city_n and_o country_n but_o rather_o all_o in_o general_n wherefore_o if_o he_o will_v clear_v himself_o of_o that_o foul_a imputation_n which_o he_o seem_v so_o far_o to_o abhor_v let_v he_o deal_v plain_o and_o disclaim_v his_o construction_n he_o now_o enforce_v of_o contain_v both_o city_n &_o country_n and_o stick_v to_o the_o usual_a metonymy_n of_o the_o christian_n people_n in_o city_n and_o country_n so_o his_o argument_n will_v stand_v in_o this_o form_n whatsoever_o church_n in_o s._n johns_n time_n be_v or_o cont●yned_v the_o christian_n people_n of_o a_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v the_o same_o be_v proper_o a_o diocese_n yea_o such_o a_o diocese_n as_o we_o be_v but_o every_o of_o the_o 7._o church_n of_o asia_n be_v or_o contain_v in_o s._n johns_n time_n the_o christian_n people_n of_o a_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v therefore_o every_o of_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v proper_o a_o diocese_n yea_o such_o a_o diocese_n as_o we_o be_v if_o it_o please_v the_o d._n in_o his_o next_o to_o give_v allowance_n unto_o this_o form_n his_o assumption_n will_v perhaps_o be_v allow_v to_o pass_v with_o some_o connivance_n till_o there_o be_v some_o good_a cause_n of_o call_v it_o into_o question_n but_o he_o will_v find_v it_o a_o labour_n surpass_v all_o his_o skill_n and_o strength_n to_o make_v good_a the_o proposition_n wherefore_o i_o have_v little_a hope_n that_o he_o will_v make_v this_o exchange_n see_v he_o indeavour_v his_o best_a to_o justify_v aswell_o the_o word_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o first_o assumption_n against_o his_o refu●_n exception_n concern_v the_o word_n first_o be_v it_o say_v the_o d._n so_o strange_a a_o thing_n with_o our_o learned_a refuter_fw-la that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o 53._o sect._n 14._o add_v sect_n 8_o pag._n 53._o church_n let_v he_o look_v back_o to_o apoc._n 1._o 11._o &_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v ephesus_n smyrna_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v the_o ref_n how_o unlearned_a soever_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o d._n have_v no_o need_n to_o learn_v at_o his_o hand_n that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n may_v be_v and_o with_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n be_v put_v metonymicè_fw-la for_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o that_o city_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o be_v very_o easy_a for_o the_o d._n to_o show_v we_o that_o the_o apostle_n use_v this_o phrase_n of_o speech_n in_o their_o writing_n for_o when_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o place_n or_o city_n itself_o but_o of_o the_o church_n seat_v in_o any_o city_n they_o usual_o explain_v themselves_o by_o some_o such_o word_n as_o these_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o jerusalem_n or_o antioch_n etc._n etc._n act._n 8._o 1._o and_o 11._o 22._o and_o 13._o 1._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 2._o apo._n 2._o 12._o 18._o and_o 3._o 1._o 7._o the_o church_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o smyrnian_o &c._n &c._n 1._o thess_n 1._o 1._o apoc._n 2._o 8._o and_o 3._o 14._o the_o saint_n at_o jerusalem_n lidda_n etc._n etc._n act._n 8._o 13_o 22._o ephes_n 1._o 1._o phil._n 1._o 1._o 2._o as_o for_o the_o word_n of_o apoc._n 1._o 11_o whereunto_o he_o send_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o learn_v that_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v eph●sus_n smyrna_n etc._n etc._n let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o have_v learning_n enough_o to_o see_v that_o the_o d._n gloss_n have_v no_o warrant_n from_o the_o text_n the_o word_n be_v k●ipempson_n tais_fw-fr e●clesiais_fw-fr tais_fw-fr en_fw-fr asia_n eye_v eph●son_n text_n the_o d._n gloss_n be_v without_o warrant_n of_o the_o text_n kieis_fw-mi smurnan_n etc._n etc._n and_o send_v to_o the_o 7._o church_n which_o be_v in_o asia_n at_o ephesus_n and_o at_o smyrna_n &c_n &c_n for_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o find_v ●is_n put_v for_o en_fw-fr and_o our_o latin_a translator_n as_o the_o vulgar_a vatablus_n beza_n &c._n &c._n do_v with_o one_o consent_n turn_n eye_v epheson_n etc._n etc._n ephesi_n vel_fw-la epheso_fw-la smyrna_n &c._n &c._n i_o wish_v the_o d._n to_o see_v whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o himself_o do_v not_o turn_n eye_v epheson_n eye_v smyrnan_n etc._n etc._n apoc._n 1._o 11._o by_o en_fw-fr epheso_fw-mi en_fw-fr smyrna_n etc._n etc._n apoc._n 2._o 1._o 8._o 12._o 18._o and_o 3._o 1._o 7._o 14._o and_o as_o little_a skill_n as_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v in_o the_o tongue_n yet_o have_v he_o observe_v thus_o much_o that_o when_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o writing_n do_v note_v the_o person_n to_o who_o any_o letter_n or_o mes●age_n be_v send_v they_o do_v either_o use_v the_o dative_a case_n as_o here_o tais_fw-fr ●c●l●siais_fw-fr so_o elsewhere_o humin_fw-la apestale_fw-la to_o you_o be_v the_o word_n of_o salvation_n send_v act._n 13._o 26._o hon_fw-mi epempsa_fw-la humin_fw-la i_o have_v send_v timothe_n to_o you_o 1_o cor._n 4._o 17._o see_v the_o like_a phil._n 2._o 19_o math_n 20._o 16._o apoc._n 11._o 10._o or_o else_o they_o take_v the_o preposition_n pros_fw-mi as_o when_o paul_n send_v tychicus_n to_o the_o ephesian_n colossian_n he_o say_v hon_fw-mi epempsa_fw-la pros_fw-la humas_fw-la ephe._n 6._o 22._o colos_n 4._o 8._o see_v the_o like_a luk._n 7._o 19_o joh._n 16._o 3._o acts._n 19_o 31._o and_o 23._o 30._o tit._n 3._o 12._o as_o for_o the_o proposition_n eye_v in_o embassage_n etc._n etc._n it_o do_v always_o note_v the_o place_n and_o
bishop_n of_o the_o city_n adjoyninge_v how_o can_v they_o and_o their_o people_n be_v repute_v part_n of_o the_o citie-church_n or_o enclose_v within_o her_o circuit_n wherefore_o since_o it_o be_v confess_v serm_n pag._n 24._o that_o country_n town_n remein_v heathenish_a for_o a_o time_n after_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o city_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v also_o that_o the_o church_n circuit_n at_o the_o first_o do_v not_o enclose_v the_o country_n villagy_n as_o it_o do_v afterwards_o notwithstanding_o to_o justify_v his_o former_a assertion_n he_o allege_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o bishop_n set_v over_o the_o city_n and_o country_n when_o all_o be_v christian_n then_o when_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o the_o same_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n have_v jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o christian_n both_o in_o the_o city_n and_o the_o country_n aswell_o when_o all_o be_v christian_n as_o when_o but_o a_o few_o he_o will_v have_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n which_o succeed_v some_o age_n after_o in_o the_o same_o city_n have_v the_o same_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n when_o they_o be_v all_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n which_o the_o first_o apostolic_a bishop_n have_v over_o those_o few_o in_o the_o city_n &_o country_n adjoin_v that_o first_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n for_o he_o acknowledge_v def._n pag._n 54._o that_o it_o can_v scarce_o be_v verify_v in_o any_o place_n till_o constantine_n time_n which_o be_v above_o 200._o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n johns_n day_n that_o all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n &_o country_n be_v christian_n but_o with_o what_o band_n can_v the_o d._n tie_v together_o these_o part_n of_o his_o reason_n reason_n with_o what_o hand_n can_v the_o doct._n tie_v together_o the_o part_n of_o his_o reason_n the_o bishop_n in_o constantine_n time_n and_o after_o have_v the_o like_a jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n that_o the_o first_o apostolic_a bishop_n have_v over_o those_o few_o that_o first_o embrace_v christianity_n therefore_o the_o circuit_n of_o the_o church_n be_v at_o the_o first_o when_o they_o be_v but_o few_o the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v after_o when_o all_o become_v christian_n be_v there_o not_o much_o more_o probability_n in_o this_o consequence_n the_o bishop_n in_o constantine_n day_n and_o after_o have_v the_o like_a jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n that_o the_o first_o apostolic_a bishop_n have_v over_o those_o few_o which_o at_o first_o embrace_v christianity_n ergo_fw-la the_o circuit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n charge_n be_v far_o less_o while_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o than_o it_o be_v when_o all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n be_v convert_v unto_o the_o christian_a faith_n which_o of_o these_o two_o have_v more_o probability_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o judge_v wherefore_o till_o the_o d._n can_v make_v good_a the_o consequence_n of_o his_o reasoninge_a all_o the_o proof_n which_o he_o brag_v of_o for_o the_o demonstration_n of_o his_o antecedent_n the_o ancient_a of_o they_o be_v after_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n as_o appear_v def._n pag._n 36._o etc._n etc._n do_v give_v just_a occasion_n of_o return_v into_o his_o own_o bosom_n that_o definitive_a sentence_n which_o he_o deliver_v against_o his_o opposite_n viz._n that_o the_o general_a consent_n and_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o all_o christendom_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n aught_o without_o comparison_n to_o prevail_v with_o all_o man_n in_o persuade_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o every_o church_n circuit_n be_v much_o enlarge_v by_o the_o general_a conversion_n of_o all_o in_o city_n and_o country_n town_n above_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o few_o self-conceited_a person_n such_o as_o the_o d._n and_o his_o associate_n not_o so_o singular_a for_o learning_n as_o they_o be_v singular_a in_o opinion_n when_o they_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v if_o they_o can_v that_o every_o church_n circuit_n be_v the_o same_o at_o first_o when_o but_o a_o few_o embrace_v the_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v after_o when_o all_o the_o people_n of_o city_n &_o country_n be_v make_v member_n of_o one_o diocesan_n church_n if_o the_o d._n shall_v fly_v as_o to_o a_o sanctuary_n ●o_o his_o former_a evasion_n viz._n that_o the_o ch●c●●●uite_o contain_v at_o the_o first_o both_o city_n &_o country_n in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o apost_n or_o first_o founder_n i_o have_v enough_o already_o say_v to_o drive_v he_o out_o of_o this_o start_a hole_n unless_o he_o can_v provide_v some_o better_a forfication_n to_o relieve_v himself_o in_o this_o behalf_n but_o he_o suppose_v that_o he_o have_v sufficient_o fortify_v his_o assumption_n by_o repair_v the_o breach_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v make_v in_o the_o reason_n which_o his_o sermon_n tender_v in_o defence_n thereof_o his_o word_n be_v these_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n christ_n write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n number_v but_o 7._o and_o name_v the_o principal_a and_o some_o of_o they_o mother-city_n of_o asia_n say_v the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angle_n of_o the_o 7._o 56._o sect._n 18._o add_v sect_n 9_o pag_n ●5_n 56._o church_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o be_v bishop_n be_v great_a and_o ample_a city_n and_o not_o the_o city_n alone_o but_o the_o country_n adjoin_v from_o hence_o his_o refuter_fw-la draw_v this_o connexive_a syllogism_n answer_v p._n 55._o if_o our_o saivour_n write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n number_v ●ut_v 9_o and_o some_o of_o they_o mother_n city_n then_o they_o be_v great_a and_o ample_a city_n and_o not_o the_o city_n alone_o but_o the_o country_n adjoin_v but_o our_o saiviour_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la now_o the_o d._n mislike_v the_o frame_n of_o this_o argument_n refer_v he_o to_o his_o former_a manner_n of_o argue_v sect_n 2._o pag._n 42._o 43._o where_o he_o show_v how_o this_o lyllogisme_n be_v to_o be_v frame_v and_o there_o we_o find_v a_o double_a proof_n lay_v down_o in_o defence_n of_o his_o assumption_n as_o he_o have_v now_o shape_v it_o uz._n that_o the_o 7._o church_n contain_v within_o their_o circuit_n the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v the_o which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v prove_v first_o joint_o thus_o if_o the_o 7._o church_n within_o their_o circuit_n comprise_v all_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n then_o all_o both_o in_o city_n and_o country_n but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n write_v to_o the_o church_n ●n_fw-fr asia_n comprise_v all_o under_o these_o 7._o as_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o contain_v within_o their_o circuit_n all_o the_o rest_n concern_v the_o doct._n joint_o let_v we_o several_o observe_v first_o that_o he_o conceal_v his_o conclusion_n second_o that_o he_o depart_v from_o the_o word_n lay_v down_o in_o his_o sermon_n and_o three_o that_o he_o follow_v not_o his_o own_o direction_n give_v for_o the_o reduce_n of_o a_o enthymeme_n or_o connexive_a argument_n into_o a_o simple_a syllogism_n note_n 3._o fault_n at_o once_o in_o the_o doctor_n worth_n the_o note_n 1._o we_o need_v not_o mervile_a why_o he_o conceal_v his_o conclusion_n the_o reason_n be_v apparent_a he_o conclude_v not_o his_o assumption_n which_o be_v in_o question_n for_o his_o proposition_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v uz._n that_o if_o the_o 7._o church_n comprise_v within_o their_o circuit_n all_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n then_o all_o both_o in_o city_n and_o country_n his_o conclusion_n must_v be_v this_o &_o none_o other_o that_o the_o 7._o church_n do_v comprise_v within_o their_o circuit_n all_o the_o church_n that_o be_v both_o in_o the_o city_n and_o country_n of_o asia_n a_o point_n far_o differ_v from_o that_o which_o himself_o propose_v to_o prove_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o 7._o church_n within_o their_o circuit_n contain_v both_o the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v that_o be_v as_o himself_o explain_v his_o own_o meaning_n pag._n 52._o the_o circuit_n of_o every_o one_o of_o those_o 7._o church_n contain_v both_o the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v for_o the_o consequence_n of_o his_o proposition_n as_o he_o have_v propose_v it_o run_v more_o currant_n than_o it_o will_v if_o he_o have_v say_v as_o he_o shall_v thus_o if_o the_o 7._o church_n comprise_v within_o their_o circuit_n all_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n then_o every_o of_o those_o 7._o church_n contain_v in_o her_o circuit_n the_o whole_a city_n with_o the_o country_n adjoin_v for_o here_o a_o man_n may_v very_o well_o deny_v the_o consequent_a although_o he_o see_v better_a proof_n than_o the_o d._n have_v bring_v for_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o antecedent_n 2._o but_o when_o depart_v he_o from_o the_o word_n of_o his_o sermon_n both_o in_o the_o antecedent_n &_o
holy_a ghost_n meaning_n to_o limit_v the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n be_v clear_o discover_v by_o twice_o mention_v the_o number_n of_o 7._o church_n in_o say_v that_o the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n and_o that_o the_o 7._o candlestick_n be_v the_o 7._o church_n than_o it_o seem_v he_o will_v have_v say_v the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o 7._o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n in_o case_n he_o have_v intend_v to_o signify_v no_o more_o but_o 7._o angel_n but_o the_o former_a be_v evident_a therefore_o the_o late_a can_v be_v deny_v to_o all_o this_o the_o doct._n give_v no_o other_o answer_n than_o in_o pag._n 32_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v more_o plain_o limit_v the_o number_n then_o if_o he_o have_v say_v so_o for_o if_o he_o have_v say_v they_o be_v the_o 7._o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n a_o captious_a sophister_n will_v have_v expound_v septem_fw-la 7._o by_o septeni_fw-la seven_o a_o piece_n but_o when_o he_o say_v the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n he_o plain_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v just_a so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o of_o the_o church_n but_o have_v this_o doctor_n think_v you_o any_o fellow_n among_o man_n of_o his_o degree_n and_o learning_n that_o will_v subscribe_v to_o this_o answer_n and_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o word_n of_o his_o text_n do_v plain_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v just_a shift_v the_o doct._n have_v not_o many_o fellow_n in_o shift_v so_o many_o of_o the_o angel_n as_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o do_v more_o plain_o limit_v the_o number_n of_o 7_o then_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o 7._o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n or_o do_v it_o ever_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o any_o other_o who_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o text_n to_o imagine_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v therefore_o say_v that_o the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n rather_o then_o the_o 7._o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n because_o he_o will_v give_v no_o occasion_n to_o any_o captious_a sophister_n to_o expound_v ●eptem_fw-la by_o septeni_fw-la so_o to_o conclude_v there_o be_v just_a 7._o in_o every_o church_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v 1._o regum_fw-la 20._o that_o the_o king_n of_o aram_n have_v in_o his_o army_n 32._o king_n with_o horse_n and_o chariot_n and_o go_v up_o with_o they_o to_o besiege_v samaria_n if_o the_o refuter_fw-la shall_v deny_v the_o number_n of_o the_o horse_n and_o chariot_n to_o be_v just_a 32._o as_o be_v the_o king_n there_o mention_v it_o seem_v that_o such_o a_o captious_a sophister_n as_o the_o doctor_n be_v will_v be_v ready_a to_o contradict_v he_o and_o to_o answer_v that_o the_o number_n of_o horse_n in_o that_o army_n be_v more_o plain_o limit_v to_o the_o just_a number_n of_o 32_o then_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o those_o 32._o king_n have_v 32._o horse_n for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o say_v the_o late_a number_n of_o 32._o may_v have_v be_v expound_v by_o 32._o a_o piece_n but_o why_o strive_v i_o to_o discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o doctor_n false_a and_o captious_a shift_n which_o lie_v open_a to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o that_o be_v not_o blind_v with_o over_o gross_a partiality_n since_o therefore_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o his_o text_n limit_v not_o the_o number_n of_o angel_n unto_o 7_o as_o it_o do_v the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n he_o shall_v so_o light_o overpasse_v those_o thing_n from_o thence_o infer_v by_o his_o refuter_fw-la as_o he_o do_v say_v pag._n 33._o it_o be_v not_o material_a what_o the_o refuter_fw-la infer_v from_o the_o not_o ●mutation_n of_o they_o let_v the_o reader_n weigh_v the_o inference_n with_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o and_o then_o judge_v the_o inference_n be_v these_o that_o the_o hol●_n ghost_n in_o not_o limit_v they_o to_o any_o number_n will_v have_v we_o to_o understand_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v more_o angel_n or_o bishop_n then_o 7_o in_o these_o church_n as_o that_o place_n act_n 20._o 17-28_a concern_v eph_n sus_fw-la show_v and_o consequent_o they_o be_v not_o di●●●s●●_n bishop_n 2._o where_o the_o ●●s●ription_n of_o every_o epistle_n write_v to_o these_o church_n be_v to_o the_o angel_n in_o th●_n singular_a number_n it_o must_v not_o be_v take_v literal_o for_o one_o only_a but_o figurative_o and_o by_o a_o synecdoche_n the_o singular_a for_o the_o plural_a for_o more_o th●n_n one_o but_o because_o there_o be_v a_o veil_n that_o hide_v the_o light_n from_o his_o eye_n though_o he_o i●_n scoff_n desire_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o help_v he_o remove_v it_o yet_o will_v i_o yield_v to_o his_o request_n in_o good_a earnest_n and_o afford_v he_o some_o help_n by_o refute_v his_o argument_n produce_v which_o hang_v in_o his_o light_n and_o whereby_o he_o persuade_v himself_o as_o it_o seem_v the_o angel_n of_o those_o church_n be_v just_a 7._o and_o no_o more_o which_o do_v his_o refuter_n inference_n will_v stand_v good_a for_o any_o one_o word_n he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_n his_o first_o argument_n be_v thus_o frame_v by_o himself_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n be_v just_a 7_o or_o limit_v 2._o sect._n 2._o to_o the_o number_n of_o 7._o apoc._n 1._o 16._o and_o 2._o 1._o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n apoc._n 1._o 20._o therefore_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v just_a 7._o or_o limit_v to_o the_o number_n of_o 7._o a_o word_n or_o two_o to_o the_o assumption_n and_o then_o three_o or_o four_o to_o the_o whole_a argument_n the_o assumption_n be_v false_a and_o not_o prove_v by_o the_o place_n quote_v which_o say_v that_o the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n and_o not_o as_o the_o assumption_n say_v the_o angel_n be_v the_o 7._o star_n and_o i_o hope_v when_o the_o d._n shall_v consider_v it_o he_o will_v find_v not_o that_o they_o be_v all_o one_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o for_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n it_o be_v a_o metonymy_n of_o the_o adjunct_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v the_o 7._o star_n do_v signify_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n but_o so_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o the_o angel_n signify_v the_o star_n these_o 2._o sentence_n therefore_o be_v not_o all_o one_o there_o be_v a_o sallacy_n in_o the_o aequivocation_n to_o the_o whole_a argument_n i_o shall_v need_v say_v little_o more_o for_o if_o the_o d._n will_v but_o draw_v the_o curtain_n and_o look_v a_o little_a upon_o these_o argument_n which_o be_v of_o the_o like_a form_n and_o figure_n he_o may_v without_o any_o further_a help_n or_o more_o a_o do_v discern_v the_o deceit_n of_o his_o own_o argumentation_n 1._o the_o ram_n which_o daniel_n see_v cap._n 8._o 3._o be_v one_o only_a individuum_fw-la or_o singular_a thing_n the_o king_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n be_v that_o ram_n vers_fw-la 20._o therefore_o the_o king_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n be_v one_o only_a individuum_fw-la or_o singular_a thing_n 2._o the_o horn_n which_o zacharie_n see_v cap._n 1._o 18._o be_v just_a 4._o or_o limit_v to_o the_o number_n of_o 4._o so_o be_v the_o carpenter_n which_o he_o see_v vers_fw-la 20._o but_o they_o that_o scatter_a judah_n be_v those_o horn_n and_o they_o that_o fright_v they_o away_o be_v the_o carpenter_n therefore_o they_o that_o scatter_a judah_n be_v just_a 4_o person_n or_o limit_v to_o the_o number_n of_o 4._o and_o so_o be_v they_o also_o that_o fright_v they_o away_o 3._o aholah_n and_o aholibah_n be_v two_o woman_n the_o daughter_n be_v of_o one_o mother_n etc._n etc._n ezech._n 2._o 3._o 2_o 3._o 4._o samaria_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v aholah_n and_o aholibah_n vers_fw-la 4_o therefore_o samaria_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v two_o woman_n the_o daughter_n of_o one_o mother_n etc._n etc._n 4._o the_o wise_a virgin_n which_o take_v oil_n in_o their_o lamp_n to_o meet_v the_o bridegroom_n be_v just_a 5._o or_o limit_v to_o the_o number_n of_o 5._o so_o be_v the_o foolish_a virgin_n which_o lack_v oil_n in_o their_o lamp_n math._n 25._o 14_a but_o the_o sincere_a professor_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o truth_n be_v the_o wise_a virgin_n and_o the_o profane_a or_o hypocritical_a professor_n be_v the_o fo●lish_a virgin_n as_o all_o agree_v in_o their_o comment_n therefore_o the_o sincere_a professor_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o truth_n be_v just_a 5._o or_o limit_v to_o the_o number_n of_o 5._o and_o so_o be_v the_o profane_a or_o hypocritical_a etc._n etc._n
thus_o i_o can_v go_v on_o a_o tribus_fw-la ad_fw-la centum_fw-la but_o by_o this_o time_n i_o hope_v the_o d._n see_v the_o aequivocation_n which_o lie_v in_o his_o own_o argument_n for_o either_o he_o lack_v the_o word_n star_n in_o a_o double_a sense_n to_o wit_n for_o the_o type_n in_o the_o proposition_n and_o for_o the_o antitipe_n or_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o assumption_n or_o else_o and_o rather_o the_o aequivocation_n lie_v in_o the_o word_n be_v which_o in_o the_o proposition_n be_v take_v substantive_a but_o in_o the_o assumption_n significative_a for_o see_v himself_o do_v thus_o interpret_v his_o text_n serm_n pag._n 2._o the_o 7._o star_n be_v that_o be_v do_v signify_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n his_o assumption_n be_v false_a unless_o it_o be_v thus_o understand_v q._n d._n the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o 7._o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o understand_v then_o to_o avoid_v four_o term_n which_o mar_v the_o fashion_n of_o his_o argument_n the_o proposition_n must_v be_v thus_o change_v the_o person_n who_o ministry_n be_v represent_v by_o the_o 7._o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n be_v just_a 7._o but_o this_o be_v so_o gross_a a_o untruth_n that_o the_o d._n can_v but_o see_v it_o and_o unless_o there_o be_v a_o other_o veil_n to_o shadow_v he_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o avouch_v it_o much_o more_o to_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n apoc._n 1._o 16._o &_o 2._o 1._o to_o maintain_v it_o see_v he_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o world_n end_n to_o be_v by_o their_o office_n star_n and_o shine_a light_n so_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o minister_n p._n 61._o and_o in_o this_o sermon_n in_o quest_n p._n 55._o he_o say_v of_o dioc_n bishop_n in_o general_a that_o they_o be_v star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n yea_o he_o affirm_v the_o same_o of_o our_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n pag._n 98._o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o long_a discourse_n to_o remove_v the_o veil_n of_o this_o first_o argument_n i_o may_v here_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o it_o to_o prove_v the_o contradictory_n to_o his_o conclusion_n i_o thus_o reason_n all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o have_v charge_n to_o feed_v and_o oversee_v the_o christian_a people_n in_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n but_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o have_v charge_n to_o feed_v and_o oversee_v the_o christian_a people_n in_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v more_o than_o 7._o singular_a person_n only_o therefore_o the_o person_n signify_v by_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n be_v more_o than_o 7._o singular_a person_n only_o the_o assumption_n need_v no_o proof_n more_o than_o what_o be_v after_o gather_v from_o act._n 20._o 28._o since_o it_o be_v of_o all_o our_o adversary_n acknowledge_v and_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o be_v the_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o their_o whole_a building_n for_o how_o shall_v this_o text_n justify_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n above_o other_o minister_n if_o there_o be_v not_o diverse_a minister_n in_o each_o of_o these_o church_n subject_n to_o one_o bishop_n and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o only_o 7._o angel_n that_o be_v bishop_n in_o these_o 7._o church_n there_o be_v then_o but_o one_o only_a angel_n or_o bishop_n in_o each_o several_a church_n but_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o that_o place_n of_o the_o act_n that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o in_o that_o church_n of_o ephesus_n see_v it_o speak_v of_o bishop_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n ordain_v and_o set_v over_o that_o church_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o these_o 7._o as_o it_o be_v with_o it_o and_o other_o phil._n 1._o 1._o act._n 13._o 1._o 2._o &_o 14._o 23._o tit._n 1._o 5._o the_o proposition_n be_v a_o truth_n not_o to_o be_v deny_v see_v it_o be_v also_o confess_v by_o the_o doctor_n serm_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 46._o and_o 61._o and_o easy_a to_o be_v prove_v if_o any_o man_n else_o shall_v gain●_n say_v it_o for_o 1._o the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o name_n of_o star_n be_v use_v to_o signify_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o to_o explain_v their_o function_n be_v this_o viz._n that_o as_o the_o star_n be_v set_v in_o the_o firmament_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o earth_n gen._n 1._o 17._o and_o to_o govern_v the_o night_n psal_n 136._o 9_o so_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o general_a &_o not_o of_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o particular_a to_o shine_v as_o light_n unto_o the_o church_n in_o all_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n of_o conversation_n mat._n 5._o 14._o 15._o joh._n 5._o 35._o phil._n 2._o 15._o cum_fw-la cap._n 1._o 1._o that_o man_n which_o natural_o be_v in_o darkness_n 2._o cor._n 4._o 6._o eph._n 5._o 8._o may_v have_v their_o heart_n enlighten_v &_o convert_v act._n 26._o 18._o dan._n 12._o 3._o and_o still_o direct_v in_o the_o way_n of_o obedience_n psal_n 119._o 105._o wherefore_o since_o it_o be_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o all_o minister_n in_o general_a thus_o to_o s●ine_v and_o enlighten_v other_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o name_n of_o star_n do_v equal_o agree_v to_o all_o 2._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o word_n be_v use_v when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n be_v darken_v rev._n 8._o 12._o &_o that_o the_o dragon_n tail_n draw_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o cast_v they_o to_o the_o earth_n rev._n 12._o 4._o for_o hereby_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v the_o corruption_n and_o apostasy_n not_o of_o bishop_n &_o archbishop_n only_o but_o of_o preacher_n &_o teacher_n in_o general_a which_o in_o huge_a heap_n and_o multitude_n be_v draw_v to_o embrace_v &_o teach_v haeresy_n superstition_n and_o idolattie_a 3._o moreover_o although_o it_o be_v so_o with_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o star_n that_o as_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o a_o other_o in_o glory_n 1._o cor._n 15._o 41._o some_o here_o excel_v other_o in_o gift_n and_o labour_n 1._o cor._n 12._o 4._o 11._o &_o 2._o cor._n 11._o 23_o shall_v also_o exceed_v they_o hereafter_o in_o glory_n 1._o cor._n 3._o 8._o yet_o it_o no_o where_o appear_v in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o name_n of_o star_n be_v give_v to_o any_o one_o degree_n or_o order_n of_o minister_n much_o less_o appropriate_v to_o the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o declare_v their_o pre-eminence_n dignity_n or_o advancement_n above_o other_o preacher_n 4._o neither_o be_v that_o gracious_a protection_n and_o safety_n which_o be_v assure_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n by_o his_o hold_v the_o 7._o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n rev._n 1._o 16._o 20._o &_o 2._o 1._o any_o privilege_n proper_a to_o bishop_n but_o a_o favour_n which_o he_o communicate_v to_o all_o that_o faithful_o serve_v he_o in_o their_o ministerial_a function_n whatever_o it_o be_v for_o the_o promise_n both_o of_o christ_n presence_n and_o assistance_n exod._n 3._o 12._o mat._n 28._o 20._o to_o protect_v or_o deliver_v from_o evil_a jer._n 1._o 18._o 19_o ezek._n 2._o 6._o &_o 3._o 8._o 9_o act._n 18._o 9_o 10._o &_o to_o preserve_v from_o fall_v 2._o tim._n 4._o 17._o 18._o rev._n 12._o 4._o do_v equal_o agree_v unto_o all_o without_o any_o respect_n to_o their_o outward_a pre-eminence_n or_o low_o stand_v wherefore_o to_o prove_v the_o proposition_n against_o all_o gaynsayer_n thus_o i_o reason_n all_o that_o in_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v bind_v by_o office_n to_o enlighten_v other_o and_o to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o life_n by_o the_o light_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n presence_n to_o assist_v protect_v &_o preserve_v they_o all_o such_o i_o say_v be_v signify_v by_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n but_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o have_v charge_n to_o f●ede_v and_o oversee_v the_o christian_a people_n in_o those_o 7._o church_n be_v such_o person_n a●_n in_o those_o church_n stand_v bind_v by_o office_n to_o enlighten_v other_o and_o to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o life_n by_o the_o light_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n presence_n to_o assist_v protect_v and_o preserve_v they_o therefore_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n in_o those_o 7._o church_n
be_v signify_v by_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n in_o those_o church_n which_o be_v many_o or_o at_o least_o more_o than_o one_o in_o each_o church_n be_v also_o comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n for_o all_o the_o person_n which_o then_o live_v in_o those_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n be_v comprehend_v also_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o those_o 7._o church_n but_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n which_o attend_v on_o the_o feed_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n in_o those_o place_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o star_n which_o christ_n hold_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n therefore_o all_o those_o minister_n which_o be_v divers_a in_o each_o church_n a●_n be_v before_o show_v be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o ch._n but_o there_o will_v be_v a_o fit_a occasion_n hereafter_o to_o fortify_v this_o conclusion_n i_o will_v therefore_o pass_v to_o the_o d._n second_o syllogism_n which_o stand_v thus_o of_o ●_o monad_n or_o unitye_n such_o as_o be_v 7._o singular_a person_n the_o number_n be_v just_a 7._o 3_o sect._n 3_o the_o angel_n be_v 7._o monad_n or_o unitye_n as_o be_v 7._o singular_a person_n therefore_o of_o the_o angel_n the_o number_n be_v just_a 7._o may_v i_o demand_v of_o he_o what_o move_v he_o to_o add_v this_o clause_n to_o his_o proposition_n such_o as_o be_v 7._o singular_a person_n do_v not_o his_o science_n and_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n sundry_a monad_n or_o unitye_n of_o man_n &_o angel_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o so_o many_o singular_a person_n but_o rather_o for_o so_o many_o several_a rank_n or_o society_n so_o that_o if_o this_o clause_n have_v be_v omit_v he_o foresee_v his_o proposition_n have_v be_v liable_a to_o just_a reproof_n again_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o number_n be_v just_a 7._o do_v he_o not_o mean_a that_o the_o number_n be_v just_a 7._o singular_a person_n or_o 7._o individua_fw-la who_o then_o have_v such_o a_o veil_n before_o his_o eye_n idem_fw-la the_o doct._n prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v a_o frivoulous_a trifle_n and_o a_o vain_a stryve_v to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la for_o thus_o he_o reason_v the_o angel_n be_v 7._o monad_n as_o be_v 7._o singular_a person_n therefore_o they_o be_v just_a 7._o individua_fw-la or_o 7._o singular_a person_n wherefore_o for_o a_o direct_a answer_n to_o the_o argument_n as_o it_o stand_v it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o reject_v the_o assumption_n as_o a_o palpable_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n and_o it_o be_v as_o palpable_a a_o untruth_n which_o he_o adjoin_v for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o when_o he_o say_v that_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o inscription_n of_o the_o 7._o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o that_o the_o angel_n be_v 7._o singular_a person_n for_o it_o untruth_n the_o d._n assumption_n beg_v the_o question_n and_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o a_o untruth_n can_v appear_v by_o those_o inscription_n till_o he_o have_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n signify_v by_o the_o 7._o star_n in_o his_o text_n be_v none_o other_o than_o those_o angel_n to_o who_o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v and_o that_o the_o angel_n write_v to_o in_o those_o inscription_n be_v 7._o singular_a person_n there_o be_v i_o confess_v which_o grant_v the_o latter_a &_o yet_o deny_v the_o former_a for_o though_o they_o primary_o understand_v to●_n pro●stata_fw-la the_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n by_o that_o one_o angel_n note_v in_o the_o inscription_n yet_o they_o restrain_v not_o the_o name_n of_o star_n or_o angel_n in_o his_o text_n to_o those_o precedent_n only_o but_o intend_v they_o also_o to_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o attend_v one_o the_o feed_n of_o these_o church_n wherefore_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v and_o not_o assume_v without_o proof_n this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o angel_n in_o his_o text_n be_v the_o same_o in_o number_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o those_o angel_n that_o be_v according_a to_o their_o sense_n primary_o point_a at_o in_o those_o inscription_n other_o there_o be_v who_o though_o they_o acknowledge_v a_o precedent_n in_o every_o society_n of_o minister_n throughout_o those_o ch_z yet_o they_o limit_v not_o that_o title_n in_o the_o inscription_n to_o the_o precedent_n only_o but_o take_v it_o for_o the_o whole_a society_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o second_o point_n which_o the_o d._n ought_v strong_o to_o have_v confirm_v if_o he_o will_v have_v reason_v sound_o for_o whereas_o he_o add_v that_o whosoever_o be_v able_a to_o count_v 20._o may_v easy_o another_o the_o d._n again_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la or_o one_o untruth_n by_o another_o find_v just_a 7._o if_o he_o mean_v as_o he_o must_v to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n just_a 7._o singular_a person_n what_o else_o do_v he_o again_o but_o trifle_n in_o justify_v one_o untruth_n by_o another_o or_o rather_o in_o labour_v again_o to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la and_o may_v it_o please_v he_o in_o his_o next_o defence_n to_o recite_v they_o plain_o and_o as_o he_o ought_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n at_o ephesus_n be_v one_o singular_a person_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n at_o smyrna_n be_v a_o second_o singular_a person_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n i_o will_v if_o his_o refuter_fw-la can_v keep_v tale_n for_o he_o and_o tell_v in_o the_o end_n that_o notwithstanding_o his_o boast_n he_o have_v 7._o time_n together_o beg_v together_o the_o d._n beg_v 7_o time_n together_o what_o he_o shall_v and_o will_v have_v prove_v but_o can_v for_o he_o have_v already_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n and_o that_o with_o more_o show_n of_o reason_n than_o he_o can_v remove_v that_o in_o the_o inscription_n of_o those_o epistle_n the_o word_n angel_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n note_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o angel_n or_o bishop_n which_o be_v in_o each_o church_n and_o not_o one_o singular_a person_n only_o if_o his_o meaning_n be_v as_o it_o seem_v by_o his_o last_o word_n 7._o angel_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o to_o reason_n thus_o the_o angel_n to_o who_o the_o 7._o epistle_n be_v write_v be_v 7._o angel_n or_o 7._o monad_n of_o angel_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o therefore_o they_o be_v 7._o singular_a person_n though_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o consequence_n appear_v by_o that_o already_o say_v yet_o to_o make_v it_o more_o apparent_a i_o here_o tender_a to_o he_o view_v these_o few_o argument_n 1_o the_o angel_n by_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v publish_v apoc._n 14._o 6._o 8._o 9_o be_v 3._o angel_n or_o 3._o unity_n of_o angel_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o therefore_o they_o be_v 3._o singular_a person_n 2_o the_o king_n mean_v by_o the_o 7._o head_n of_o the_o beast_n apoc._n 17._o 9_o 10._o be_v 7._o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o ergo._n 7._o singular_a person_n 3_o the_o virgin_n mention_v math._n 25._o 1._o 2._o be_v 10._o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o the_o two_o five_o there_o note_v show_v the_o account_n to_o be_v just_a ten_o as_o every_o one_o that_o can_v tell_v 20._o well_o know_v 4_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n and_o king_n of_o the_o north_n dan._n 11._o 5._o 15._o be_v two_o monad_n or_o unity_n 5_o the_o party_n refuse_v the_o marriage_n banquet_n be_v 3._o monad_n or_o unity_n so_o reckon_v one_o by_o one_o luk._n 14._o 18._o 19_o 20._o 6_o so_o be_v the_o servant_n that_o have_v the_o talent_n commit_v to_o they_o math._n 25._o 15._o 18._o 7_o the_o man_n sound_v in_o the_o field_n at_o the_o last_o day_n be_v only_o two_o unity_n so_o be_v the_o woman_n at_o the_o mill_n math._n 24._o 40._o 41._o shall_v we_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o every_o of_o those_o be_v so_o many_o singular_a person_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o 8_o and_o must_v we_o also_o limit_n the_o number_n of_o those_o 144000._o mention_v apoc._n 7._o 4._o 8._o to_o so_o many_o person_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o because_o 12._o time_n 12000._o do●_n precise_o conclude_v that_o number_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o in_o these_o scripture_n a_o certain_a number_n be_v put_v for_o a_o uncertain_a and_o unlimited_a and_o that_o in_o some_o of_o these_o where_o a_o distribution_n be_v make_v of_o diverse_a unity_n we_o be_v thereby_o to_o understand_v not_o so_o many_o singular_a person_n precise_o but_o so_o many_o rank_n or_o order_n of_o person_n agree_v in_o
one_o thing_n as_o apoc._n 14._o 6._o 9_o three_o rank_n of_o minister_n succeed_v one_o another_o and_o concur_v in_o one_o course_n of_o doctrine_n the_o 7._o king_n and_o the_o two_o king_n above_o mention_v apoc._n 17._o &_o dan._n 11._o be_v so_o many_o order_n or_o state_n of_o government_n the_o party_n refuse_v the_o marriage_n feast_n be_v so_o many_o company_n agre_v in_o one_o excuse_v etc._n etc._n in_o like_a manner_n if_o the_o refuter_fw-la shall_v say_v that_o those_o 7_o monad_n of_o angel_n reckon_v up_o apoc._n 2._o &_o 3._o be_v so_o many_o society_n of_o minister_n conjoin_v in_o one_o charge_n of_o one_o church_n the_o d._n may_v see_v his_o interpretation_n be_v back_v by_o many_o like_a speech_n in_o script_n where_o one_o monade_n or_o unity_n be_v put_v for_o many_o link_a togithe_n in_o one_o society_n pass_v we_o now_o on_o to_o his_o 3._o argument_n from_o which_o we_o may_v well_o 4._o sect._n 4._o pass_v see_v it_o may_v have_v be_v better_o spare_v then_o ill_o spend_v it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o new_a repetition_n of_o what_o he_o urge_v before_o to_o prove_v the_o assumption_n of_o his_o second_o only_o he_o have_v here_o set_v in_o form_n of_o reason_v the_o strength_n of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o substance_n of_o matter_n there_o deliver_v when_o he_o ●ayth_v the_o inscription_n of_o the_o 7._o epistle_n write_v to_o the_o angel_n do_v sh●w_o that_o they_o be_v 7._o singular_a person_n but_o lest_o he_o shall_v judge_v better_o of_o it_o than_o there_o be_v cause_n i_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o examine_v it_o and_o this_o it_o be_v to_o who_o the_o epistle_n be_v write_v they_o be_v just_a 7._o for_o they_o be_v write_v singult_n singul●s_v th●_n first_o to_o the_o first_o &c._n &c._n to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n the_o 7._o epistle_n be_v write_v therefore_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v just_a 7._o once_o again_o i_o must_v demand_v wha●_n he_o mean_v by_o just_a 7_o if_o 7._o singular_a person_n only_o the_o proposition_n be_v gross_o false_a and_o that_o also_o which_o he_o add_v for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o for_o those_o epistle_n be_v not_o write_v singulae_fw-la singulis_fw-la personis_fw-la each_o to_o one_o only_a person_n but_o rather_o singulae_fw-la singulis_fw-la soc●ita●ibu●_n each_o epistle_n to_o that_o society_n of_o angel_n or_o bishop_n which_o attend_v on_o the_o church_n in_o that_o city_n mention_v in_o the_o inscription_n and_o not_o to_o they_o alone_o but_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a ch._n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o apoc._n 1._o 11._o and_o consequent_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o communion_n which_o all_o church_n have_v one_o with_o another_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o to_o every_o one_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n to_o hear_v as_o the_o conclusion_n of_o each_o epistle_n show_v chap._n 2._o 7._o 11._o 17._o 29._o and_o chap_n 3._o 6._o 13._o 22._o as_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o arethas_n &_o ambrose_n they_o nothing_o help_v to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n scz_n that_o the_o angel_n in_o his_o text_n be_v only_o 7._o person_n for_o as_o we_o need_v not_o deny_v the_o angel_n to_o who_o the_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o be_v as_o arethas_n say_v just_a of_o the_o same_o number_n with_o the_o church_n so_o we_o may_v grant_v with_o ambrose_n that_o these_o 7._o angel_n be_v the_o 7._o ●●lers_n of_o the_o 7._o ch._n and_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o by_o the_o angel_n mention_v in_o the_o d._n text_n be_v mean_v only_o 7._o overse_v angel_n other_o angel_n or_o minist_n exclude_v as_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o in_o answ_n to_o his_o next_o section_n the_o testimony_n of_o father_n and_o new_a writer_n also_o they_o be_v mo●_n that_o be_v with_o we_o then_o with_o he_o in_o this_o point_n namely_o that_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o each_o inscription_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v more_o than_o one_o minister_n or_o church-ruler_n mr._n fox_n in_o his_o meditation_n on_o the_o revelation_n pag._n 7._o 9_o 17._o gather_v and_o confer_v together_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o interpreter_n that_o he_o can_v meet_v with_o say_v they_o all_o consent_v in_o this_o that_o under_o the_o person_n of_o a_o angel_n the_o pas●o●_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v understand_v let_v the_o reader_n see_v what_o he_o say_v there_o concern_v augustin_n primasius_n hay●o_n beda_n richard_n thomas_n and_o other_o i_o will_v also_o here_o show_v what_o some_o of_o they_o say_v augustin_n epist_n 132._o say_v thus_o si●_n enim_fw-la in_o apocalypsi_fw-la legitur_fw-la angelus_n etc._n etc._n quoth_v si_fw-la deangelo_n superiorem_fw-la c●lorum_fw-la et_fw-la non_fw-la d●_n pr●positis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la vellet_fw-la intelligi_fw-la none_o consequenter_fw-la diceret_fw-la habeo_fw-la adversum_fw-la te_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereby_o he_o plain_o show_v that_o though_o he_o speak_v afterward_o but_o as_o of_o one_o yet_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o more_o than_o one_o as_o his_o 2._o homely_a upon_o the_o apocalyps_n show_v quod_fw-la autem_fw-la dicit_fw-la angelo_n thyatirae_fw-la habeo_fw-la adversum_fw-la te_fw-la dicit_fw-la prepositis_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la that_o he_o say_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o thyatira_n i_o have_v somewhat_o against_o the_o he_o say_v it_o to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n and_o though_o bishop_n bilson_n allege_v he_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o self_n same_o epistle_n the_o word_n follow_v laudatur_fw-la sub_fw-la angeli_fw-la nomine_fw-la praepositus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n be_v praise_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o angel_n yet_o have_v we_o reas●_n to_o think_v he_o mean_v not_o to_o appropriate_v to_o one_o only_a person_n either_o the_o title_n of_o prepositus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la or_o the_o praise_n there_o speak_v of_o see_v in_o the_o self_n same_o epistle_n compare_v with_o his_o 2._o homely_a before_o name_v he_o include_v both_o the_o company_n of_o presbyter_n &_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v out_o of_o other_o his_o writing_n that_o by_o prepositus_fw-la ecclesie_n ruler_n of_o the_o church_n he_o understand_v all_o they_o that_o have_v authority_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o to_o rebuke_v man_n of_o sin_n &c_n &c_n see_v his_o tract_n on_o john_n 46._o and_o de_fw-la civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 9_o and_o mr._n fox_n his_o meditation_n in_o apoc_n ex_fw-la august_n in_o apoc._n hom._n 2._o interdum_fw-la angelorum_fw-la nomine_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la catholicas_fw-la voluit_fw-la intelligi_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la soli_fw-la opinor_fw-la minîstri_fw-la sed_fw-la et_fw-la universitas_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la voco_fw-la ad_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la i_o can_v add_v to_o he_o chrisostom_n in_o cap._n 2._o ad_fw-la tim._n ambrose_n in_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 10._o jerom_n on_o the_o same_o place_n and_o phil._n 1._o 1._o gregory_n in_o his_o moral_n on_o job._n lib._n 11._o cap._n 3._o beda_n in_o luk._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o rupertus_n tincinens_fw-la lib._n 1._o in_o apoc._n c._n 3._o albin_n lib._n 1._o in_o joh._n 1._o aretius_n in_o apoc_fw-la 3._o 1._o marlorat_n in_o apoc._n 2._o 1._o angelo_n ecclesiasticarun_v in_o dextra_fw-la sva_fw-la habet_fw-la christus_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la pastor_n omnes_fw-la et_fw-la episcopos_fw-la seu_fw-la verbi_fw-la ministros_fw-la potestate_fw-la sva_fw-la regit_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o meaning_n by_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n of_o the_o word_n angel_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n in_o each_o inscription_n as_o the_o d._n will_v have_v it_o to_o understand_v one_o only_o chief_a pastor_n or_o bishop_n over_o the_o rest_n but_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o each_o church_n under_o that_o name_n may_v appea●e_v by_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o 5._o epistle_n be_v write_v unto_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o sardis_n in_o cap_n 3._o 1._o &_o again_o in_o cap._n 2._o 1._o verisilmile_v est_fw-fr &c._n &c._n it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o not_o some_o one_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v note_v here_o &_o in_o the_o place_n follow_v but_o the_o whole_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n to_o pass_v by_o our_o own_o writer_n mr._n fox_n mr._n perkins_n mr._n brightman_n and_o other_o i_o will_v only_o note_v what_o d._n ful●e_n say_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o rhemist_n in_o apoc._n 1._o 20._o s._n john_n say_v he_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n mean_v not_o all_o that_o shall_v wear_v on_o their_o head_n mitre_n and_o hold_v crosier_n staff_n in_o their_o hand_n like_o dead_a idol_n but_o they_o that_o be_v the_o faithful_a messenger_n of_o god_n word_n and_o utter_v and_o declare_v the_o same_o again_o they_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v god_n messenger_n unto_o the_o church_n but_o to_o shut_v up_o with_o the_o d._n
the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n angel_n be_v much_o better_a to_o express_v a_o pre-eminence_n in_o he_o that_o be_v so_o entitle_v they_o the_o church_n angel_n see_v this_o late_a debase_v his_o ministry_n much_o more_o they_o the_o former_a but_o as_o these_o name_n the_o l._n minister_n or_o servant_n and_o the_o church_n minister_n or_o servant_n phil._n 1._o 1._o 2._o cor._n 6._o 4._o cum_fw-la 4._o 5._o and_o colos_n 1._o 24._o 25._o be_v indifferent_o take_v for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n or_o function_n so_o can_v there_o no_o reason_n be_v yield_v why_o also_o these_o title_n the_o lord_n angel_n and_o the_o church_n angel_n shall_v be_v divide_v into_o several_a function_n to_o conclude_v if_o neither_o the_o singularity_n of_o the_o number_n do_v argue_v a_o singular_a person_n nor_o the_o right_a reason_n of_o the_o whole_a title_n impli_v a_o pre-eminence_n in_o one_o above_o other_o see_v it_o be_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v many_o angel_n and_o prove_v that_o the_o title_n here_o use_v be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o phrase_n common_a to_o all_o the_o d._n have_v no_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la do_v without_o reason_n yea_o good_a reason_n forsake_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o number_n but_o albeit_o enough_o have_v be_v say_v to_o show_v that_o this_o title_n the_o angel_n 7._o sect._n 7._o of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a society_n of_o minister_n in_o every_o church_n rather_o then_o for_o one_o singular_a person_n set_v in_o a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n above_o the_o rest_n yet_o to_o satisfy_v those_o which_o perhaps_o may_v demand_v why_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v give_v in_o charge_n to_o john_n to_o write_v unto_o the_o angel_n as_o one_o rather_o then_o to_o the_o angel_n as_o to_o many_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o add_v this_o that_o follow_v 1._o i_o grant_v that_o as_o the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n particular_o name_v full_o answer_v to_o the_o 7._o golden_a candlestick_n which_o represent_v those_o church_n so_o it_o be_v very_o fit_a the_o epistle_n direct_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o those_o church_n shall_v in_o their_o inscription_n proportionate_a the_o number_n of_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o star_n by_o which_o those_o angel_n be_v shadow_v which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v if_o there_o have_v be_v express_a mention_n of_o more_o angel_n than_o one_o in_o each_o inscription_n notwithstanding_o as_o it_o be_v absurd_a from_o the_o precise_a number_n of_o 7._o ch._n to_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o all_o asia_n more_o than_o 7_o church_n or_o that_o they_o kat_n hexochen_n be_v call_v church_n 5_o to_o note_v a_o pre-eminence_n in_o jurisdiction_n or_o government_n over_o the_o rest_n so_o it_o be_v no_o less_o absurd_a to_o infer_v from_o the_o literal_a mention_n of_o one_o angel_n in_o every_o church_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a person_n in_o that_o church_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o that_o church_n do_v by_o special_a right_a apperteine_a 2._o their_o unity_n in_o the_o ministerial_a function_n &_o joint_a commission_n to_o attend_v upon_o the_o feed_n and_o govern_v of_o one_o church_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o common_a care_n and_o joint_a labour_n as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o hand_n and_o heart_n or_o affection_n to_o further_o the_o lord_n work_v in_o the_o people_n salvation_n be_v much_o more_o fit_o declare_v by_o the_o name_n of_o one_o angel_n then_o of_o many_o if_o we_o observe_v the_o phrase_n of_o speech_n use_v elsewhere_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o other_o name_n or_o title_n to_o the_o like_a purpose_n we_o often_o find_v the_o name_n of_o one_o prophet_n jer._n 6._o 13._o and_o 18._o 18._o esai_n 3._o 2._o hos_fw-la 9_o 8._o or_o priest_n jer._n 6._o 13._o and_o 18._o 18._o ezech._n 7._o 26._o hos_fw-la 4._o 6._o malach._n 2._o 7._o and_o angel_n or_o messenger_n isay_n 42._o 19_o malach_n 2._o 7._o to_o be_v put_v for_o the_o general_a body_n of_o the_o ministry_n or_o whole_a multitude_n of_o prophet_n or_o priest_n &c._n &c._n in_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n or_o judah_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n intend_v to_o reprove_v threaten_v or_o admonish_v they_o as_o occasion_n serve_v 3_o neither_o need_n it_o seem_v strange_a to_o we_o that_o a_o multitude_n or_o company_n of_o minister_n shall_v be_v understand_v under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o angel_n see_v a_o multitude_n of_o heavenly_a angel_n employ_v in_o one_o service_n for_o the_o good_a of_o god_n saint_n be_v sometime_o in_o the_o scripture_n shut_v up_o under_o one_o angel_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o gen._n 24._o 7._o 2._o king_n 19_o 35._o and_o psal_n 34._o 7._o compare_v with_o psal_n 91._o 11._o gen._n 32._o 1._o and_o 2._o king_n 6._o 16._o 17_o see_v also_o a_o multitude_n of_o devil_n or_o evil_a angel_n joint_o labour_v in_o any_o one_o work_n be_v set_v forth_o under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o evil_a or_o unclean_a spirit_n 1._o king_n 22._o 21._o 22._o mar._n 1._o 23-27_a and_o 5._o 2-3_a luk._n 4._o 33._o 34._o and_o call_v the_o devil_n or_o satan_n luc._n 8._o 27._o 30._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 8._o heb._n 2._o 14._o ephes_n 6._o 11._o 12._o 4_o moreover_o see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o common_a and_o usual_a throughout_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n by_o the_o name_n of_o one_o angel_n to_o understand_v a_o multitude_n or_o some_o whole_a society_n of_o minister_n and_o teacher_n it_o be_v very_o meet_v that_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o book_n shall_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o other_o part_n and_o that_o the_o first_o vision_n shall_v have_v none_o other_o construction_n than_o such_o as_o may_v hold_v proportion_n with_o or_o rather_o as_o a_o line_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v here_o john_n see_v 7._o star_n in_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v interpret_v to_o be_v the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n and_o he_o writ_v 7._o epistle_n to_o so_o many_o angel_n in_o another_o vision_n he_o see_v 7._o angel_n to_o who_o be_v give_v 7._o trumpet_n singulae_fw-la singulis_fw-la to_o every_o angel_n one_o trumpet_n and_o they_o blue_v their_o trumpet_n successive_o one_o after_o another_o and_o with_o differ_v effect_n rev._n 8._o 2._o 6._o 7._o etc._n etc._n after_o this_o he_o see_v 7._o angel_n and_o 7._o vial_n give_v unto_o they_o singulae_fw-la singulis_fw-la in_o which_o vial_n be_v 7._o plague_n successive_o also_o pour_v out_o by_o every_o angel_n in_o his_o time_n rev._n 15._o 6._o 7._o etc._n etc._n 16._o 1._o 2._o etc._n etc._n in_o these_o latter_a vision_n like_v as_o in_o the_o former_a some_o of_o our_o best_a interpreter_n do_v understand_v by_o angel_n the_o minister_n and_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n for_o in_o every_o age_n they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n as_o trumpet_n esa_n 58._o 1._o num._n 10._o 8._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 12._o to_o show_v the_o people_n their_o sin_n and_o to_o proclaim_v the_o will_n of_o god_n unto_o man_n and_o when_o they_o denounce_v his_o judgement_n against_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o bind_v they_o up_o in_o their_o sin_n math._n 18._o 18._o joh._n 20._o 23._o they_o after_o a_o sort_n pour_v out_o the_o vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n upon_o their_o head_n jer._n 1._o 10._o and_o 25._o 15._o 16._o 2_o cor._n 10._o 6._o rev._n 11._o 5._o 6_o now_o there_o be_v none_o so_o foolish_a as_o to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o every_o vial_n pour_v out_o or_o of_o every_o trumpet_n blow_v that_o one_o angel_n precise_o mention_v be_v one_o supreme_a bishop_n that_o have_v a_o prehemenent_n pastoral_a authority_n over_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o age_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v rather_o of_o many_o judicious_a divine_n that_o every_o of_o those_o 7._o angel_n stand_v for_o a_o multitude_n of_o faithful_a minister_n which_o in_o their_o time_n successive_o with_o one_o ●art_n and_o as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o voice_n publish_v one_o &_o the_o same_o truth_n to_o the_o world_n see_v among_o other_o marlo●at_a in_fw-la a●oc_fw-la 8._o 2._o 6._o 7._o and_o 15._o 1._o 6._o and_o aretius_n in_o chap._n 8._o 6._o &_o 9_o 13._o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v yea_o it_o be_v and_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v of_o those_o 3._o angel_n which_o follow_v one_o another_o rev._n 14._o 6._o 8._o 9_o to_o recall_v man_n unto_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n after_o it_o be_v corrupt_v by_o antichrist_n marlorat_n on_o that_o place_n method_n collat._n pag._n 322._o and_o mr._n fox_n his_o
rather_o than_o to_o set_v out_o and_o to_o lie_v hold_v upon_o a_o slender_a advantage_n rather_o pag._n sect._n 1_o ad_fw-la d._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o sect_n 2._o &_o ref._n pag._n than_o to_o leave_v his_o diocesan_n lord_n no_o foot_n in_o his_o text_n if_o a_o eminent_a superiority_n can_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o name_n of_o a_o angel_n yet_o such_o a_o presidency_n as_o be_v give_v to_o one_o above_o other_o in_o every_o well-ordered_a society_n shall_v suffice_v to_o convey_v a_o diocesan_n byshopprick_n to_o these_o angel_n and_o if_o better_a evidence_n fail_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o shall_v serve_v to_o give_v they_o a_o presidencie_n and_o though_o common_o he_o refuse_v the_o syllogism_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la reduce_v into_o form_n yet_o find_v one_o handsome_o frame_v to_o his_o hand_n though_o himself_o intend_v as_o he_o say_v no_o such_o argument_n he_o be_v well_o please_v to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o to_o stand_v forth_o in_o defence_n of_o every_o part_n of_o it_o the_o syllogism_n run_v thus_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n therefore_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n concern_v the_o assumption_n it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v upon_o what_o reason_n we_o hold_v it_o questionable_a whether_o these_o angel_n be_v 7._o only_a person_n of_o chief_a place_n in_o these_o church_n but_o here_o because_o the_o d._n ground_v himself_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o his_o refuter_fw-la answer_v he_o by_o a_o distinction_n of_o a_o two_o fold_v presbytery_n mention_v in_o their_o writing_n the_o one_o a_o presbytery_n of_o govern_v elder_n assist_v the_o pastor_n of_o each_o congregation_n the_o other_o a_o presbytery_n of_o minister_n set_v over_o diverse_a church_n now_o because_o the_o former_a can_v yield_v the_o doctor_n no_o colour_n of_o help_n to_o convey_v a_o diocesan_n bishopric_n to_o these_o angel_n &_o he_o have_v express_o mention_v the_o late_a in_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o point_n before_o handle_v serm_n pag._n 21._o his_o refuter_fw-la signify_v his_o dissent_n from_o he_o in_o the_o assumption_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o give_v those_o angel_n a_o presidencie_n over_o a_o college_n of_o minister_n assign_v to_o sundry_a particular_a congregation_n and_o this_o he_o add_v that_o he_o know_v none_o that_o do_v confess_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n to_o be_v some_o of_o those_o precedent_n now_o the_o doctor_n take_v those_o testimony_n of_o calvin_n and_o beza_n who_o he_o have_v often_o u●lified_v in_o other_o part_n of_o his_o defence_n for_o plentiful_a proof_n of_o his_o assumption_n he_o refer_v we_o to_o that_o he_o have_v allege_v out_o of_o their_o writing_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o sect_n whether_o if_o we_o go_v we_o shall_v find_v just_a nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o mr_n calvin_n have_v not_o one_o word_n touch_v those_o angel_n instit_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o sect_n 1._o 2._o and_o since_o he_o there_o express_o affirm_v that_o the_o presidencie_n which_o one_o minister_n in_o cash_n city_n call_v a_o bishop_n have_v over_o other_o minister_n his_o colleague_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o humane_a consent_n and_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n that_o he_o hold_v those_o angel_n in_o s._n johns_n time_n to_o necessitate_v humano_fw-la consensit_fw-la pro_fw-la tempo●●●_n necessitate_v be_v precedent_n of_o such_o a_o presbytery_n yea_o his_o word_n do_v sh●w●_n 〈◊〉_d 1_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o form_n of_o government_n which_o take_v place_n under_o the._n bishop_n that_o flourish_v after_o the_o apostle_n and_o before_o the_o papacy_n be_v discover_v and_o though_o mr_n b●za_n do_v affirm_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n at_o ephesus_n and_o so_o the_o rest_n each_o of_o they_o in_o his_o place_n to_o be_v the_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n there_o annotat._n in_o apoc._n 2._o 1._o yet_o have_v he_o nothing_o neither_o there_o nor_o the_o minist_n grad_v pag._n 160._o that_o can_v be_v draw_v to_o show_v that_o he_o esteem_v the_o presbytery_n or_o college_n of_o each_o angel_n to_o be_v all_o of_o they_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o pastor_n of_o several_a church_n but_o what_o need_v word_n be_v multiply_v in_o so_o plain_a a_o case_n affirm_v he_o not_o himself_o serm_n pag._n 22._o that_o the_o parish_n be_v not_o yet_o distinguish_v nor_o minister_n assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n and_o must_v he_o not_o then_o understand_v those_o presbyrerians_n with_o who_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v agreement_n to_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o presbytery_n as_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o one_o only_a church_n not_o yet_o divide_v into_o several_a title_n howsoever_o than_o he_o make_v a_o show_n of_o justify_v his_o assumption_n against_o the_o refuter_n denial_n thereof_o yet_o gainesayd_a the_o d._n subscribe_v to_o his_o ref._n and_o prove_v what_o be_v not_o gainesayd_a indeed_o he_o subscribe_v unto_o it_o and_o indeavour_v to_o prove_v it_o in_o a_o sense_n which_o now_o be_v not_o contradict_v for_o it_o be_v no_o disadvantage_n to_o we_o in_o the_o main_a question_n to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o assumption_n in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o mr._n beza_n avouch_v it_o since_o such_o a_o presidency_n as_o he_o allow_v to_o those_o angel_n can_v never_o conclude_v they_o to_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o to_o come_v therefore_o to_o the_o proposition_n because_o the_o refuter_fw-la reject_v it_o as_o false_a i_o will_v make_v good_a his_o censure_n both_o by_o removing_z 2._o sect._n 2._o the_o d_o defence_n thereof_o &_o by_o propose_v some_o other_o just_a exception_n against_o it_o and_o 1._o he_o can_v prove_v every_o precedent_n of_o a_o presbytery_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n much_o less_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o the_o usual_a construction_n of_o the_o word_n oppose_v to_o other_o ministerial_a function_n for_o if_o some_o presbytery_n be_v a_o company_n of_o apostle_n &_o apostolical_a man_n who_o be_v more_o than_o bishop_n as_o he_o acknowledge_v serm_n pag._n 38._o and_o def_a lib._n 3._o pag._n 81._o needs_o must_v their_o precedent_n be_v more_o than_o a_o bishop_n and_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o as_o james_n the_o apostle_n be_v precedent_n not_o only_o of_o the_o synod_n act._n 15._o but_o also_o of_o the_o stand_a presbytery_n act._n 21._o 18_o and_o timothe_n a_o evangelist_n precedent_n among_o the_o presbyter_n at_o ephesus_n for_o the_o time_n of_o his_o stay_n there_o by_o s._n paul_n appointment_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 3._o so_o also_o every_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o precedent_n of_o any_o church_n where_o they_o make_v their_o residence_n though_o but_o for_o a_o short_a continuance_n thus_o be_v paul_n the_o precedent_n of_o that_o presbytery_n which_o impose_v hand_n on_o timothe_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 6._o cum_fw-la 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o &_o of_o the_o ephesian_a presbytery_n during_o his_o abode_n among_o they_o act._n 20._o 17._o 31._o and_o the_o like_a presidence_n even_o at_o ephesus_n s._n john_n retain_v doubtless_o when_o after_o his_o exile_n return_v thither_o ibi_fw-la denuò_fw-la sedem_fw-la ac_fw-la don●icilium_fw-la rerum_fw-la suarum_fw-la collocavit_fw-la as_o eusebius_n report_v eccles_n hist_o lib._n 3._o chap._n 15._o for_o it_o be_v absurd_a either_o to_o seclude_v he_o from_o all_o consultation_n with_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o church_n or_o to_o make_v he_o inferior_a unto_o any_o of_o they_o and_o since_o the_o d._n acknowledge_v that_o so_o long_o as_o there_o remain_v any_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n or_o apostolical_a man_n they_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 72._o we_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v that_o he_o can_v without_o contradiction_n affirm_v in_o general_a of_o all_o the_o precedent_n that_o moderate_v the_o first_o presbytery_n that_o they_o be_v proper_o bishop_n for_o he_o account_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v proper_o bishop_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 57_o and_o he_o subscribe_v serm_n pag_n 86._o to_o the_o say_n of_o tertullian_n the_o prescrip_n adv_o haere●_n that_o in_o the_o apostolic_a church_n they_o be_v first_o bishop_n have_v for_o their_o founder_n and_o antecessor_n one_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n now_o if_o all_o the_o precedent_n of_o presbytery_n be_v not_o proper_o bishop_n how_o can_v they_o all_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n yea_o such_o as_o our_o diocesan_n be_v 2._o certain_o the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o precedent_n that_o have_v a_o presbytery_n adjoin_v to_o he_o for_o the_o managinge_v of_o church_n cause_n do_v strong_o argue_v the_o form_n of_o church-government_n then_o to_o
to_o we_o at_o this_o day_n chap._n 4._o contain_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o d._n last_o argument_n draven_v from_o his_o text_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 6._o sect_n 3._o pag._n 142._o handle_v by_o the_o ref._n pag._n 155._o 156._o of_o his_o answer_n we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o that_o argument_n wherewith_o the_o d._n close_v 3_o sect._n 3_o all_o up_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 6._o sect_n 3._o the_o which_o we_o may_v well_o overpasse_v see_v he_o have_v not_o one_o word_n in_o it_o more_o than_o be_v already_o answer_v yet_o lest_o he_o shall_v think_v better_o of_o it_o than_o it_o deserve_v i_o will_v give_v the_o reader_n a_o sight_n of_o it_o those_o say_v he_o that_o be_v call_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o 7._o star_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n right_a hand_n have_v divine_a both_o institution_n and_o approbation_n the_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v call_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n &_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o 7._o star_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n right_a hand_n therefore_o th●_n diego_n bishop_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n have_v divine_a both_o institution_n and_o approbation_n the_o proposition_n which_o need_v no_o proof_n he_o prove_v 1._o by_o the_o name_n of_o angel_n 2._o by_o the_o name_n of_o star_n 3._o by_o christ_n hold_v the_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n but_o the_o assumption_n which_o carry_v both_o these_o name_n to_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o affirm_v that_o they_o also_o be_v the_o star_n in_o christ_n right_a hand_n as_o he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v in_o his_o sermon_n prove_v the_o d._n prove_v what_o need_v not_o proof_n &_o pass_v by_o what_o he_o shall_v ha●_n prove_v so_o in_o the_o defence_n thereof_o he_o overpass_v it_o tell_v we_o that_o now_o he_o go_v not_o about_o to_o prove_v it_o because_o it_o be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o because_o the_o refuter_fw-la do_v again_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o his_o former_a sermon_n scz_n that_o all_o minister_n be_v star_n &_o angel_n etc._n etc._n he_o again_o repeat_v his_o answer_n before_o refute_v to_o wit_n that_o these_o name_n kat_n hexochen_n be_v attribute_v to_o bishop_n to_o signify_v their_o pre-eminence_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o refuter_n word_n he_o vouch_v safe_v none_o other_o answer_n then_o this_o that_o they_o be_v th●_n utter_v of_o his_o splean_a and_o empty_v of_o his_o gall_n against_o bishop_n wherefore_o i_o will_v acquaint_v the_o reader_n with_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o that_o he_o may_v judge_v whether_o they_o deserve_v so_o to_o be_v censure_v be_v there_o not_o say_v the_o refuter_fw-la pag._n 155._o pre-eminence_n of_o dignity_n to_o minister_n as_o star_n unl●sse_o some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v as_o the_o sun_n from_o who_o all_o other_o have_v their_o light_n all_o faithful_a minister_n shine_v as_o star_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o lift_v not_o up_o themselves_o to_o darken_v the_o brightness_n of_o their_o brethren_n by_o their_o gl●ttring_a and_o glorious_a blaze_a as_o for_o the_o 12._o star_n rev._n 12._o 1._o he_o say_v they_o be_v either_o all_o minister_n or_o else_o the_o 12._o apostle_n only_o for_o he_o therefore_o to_o appropriate_v this_o to_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v rather_o to_o show_v his_o flatter_a humour_n then_o sound_o to_o expound_v the_o text_n and_o then_o wonder_v if_o the_o doct._n blush_v not_o and_o tremble_v not_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o glory_n which_o his_o diocesan_n bishop_n shall_v have_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o when_o he_o make_v the_o prophet_n daniel_n patron_n of_o such_o lordly_a idleness_n etc._n etc._n and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o &_o lament_v in_o he_o because_o of_o that_o which_o he_o know_v &_o profess_v in_o his_o former_a sermon_n that_o all_o minister_n be_v star_n &_o angel_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o reader_n may_v at_o large_a see_v pag._n 156._o in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o refuter_fw-la there_o be_v these_o 4._o argument_n close_o couch_v which_o do_v clear_o discover_v how_o the_o d._n abuse_v the_o text_n he_o handle_v text_n the_o refute_v prove_v by_o 4._o argument_n that_o the_o d._n abuse_v hi●_n text_n 1._o to_o appropriate_v unto_o di●●●_n bishop_n that_o which_o be_v either_o common_a to_o all_o minister_n or_o proper_a to_o the_o apostle_n be_v rather_o to_o show_v his_o flatter_a humour_n then_o sound_o to_o expound_v his_o text_n but_o the_o name_n of_o star_n apoc._n 1._o 20._o be_v common_a to_o all_o minister_n and_o all_o minister_n be_v understand_v also_o by_o the_o 12._o star_n apoc._n 12._o 1._o unless_o we_o shall_v reperte_v it_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o to_o appropriate_v the_o name_n in_o both_o place_n to_o d._n bishop_n be_v rather_o to_o show_v his_o flatter_a humour_n then_o sound_o to_o expound_v his_o text_n 2._o the_o name_n of_o star_n can_v express_v their_o preeminence_n who_o be_v as_o the_o su●●s_n from_o who_o other_o derive_v their_o light_n but_o such_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n as_o both_o the_o d._n serm_n pag._n 47._o lin_v 13._o &_o 54._o antepenult_n &_o bishop_n bilson_n perpet_n govern_v 291._o affirm_v therefore_o etc._n etc._n 3._o to_o appropriate_v to_o diocesan_n bishop_n that_o prerogative_n of_o glory_n which_o daniel_n note_v in_o the_o star_n he_o speak_v of_o cap._n 12._o 3._o be_v to_o make_v the_o prophet_n a_o patron_n of_o lordly_a idleness_n or_o at_o least_o to_o give_v that_o prerogative_n unto_o a_o work_n of_o another_o nature_n then_o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n mention_v for_o that_o which_o by_o daniel_n doctrine_n make_v man_n shine_v like_o star_n in_o heaven_n be_v the_o turn_n of_o many_o unto_o righteousness_n by_o faithfulness_n and_o painfulness_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n but_o the_o work_n which_o lift_v up_o bishop_n above_o other_o minister_n be_v the_o ordain_v of_o minister_n the_o suspending_a of_o they_o etc._n etc._n work_v of_o lordly_a idleness_n &_o not_o of_o painfulness_n or_o faithfulness_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n wherefore_o the_o d._n in_o appropriate_v to_o diocesan_n bishop_n that_o prerogative_n of_o glory_n dan._n 12._o 1._o make_v he_o a_o patron_n of_o lordly_a idleness_n etc._n etc._n 4._o he_o who_o know_v and_o profess_v that_o all_o minister_n be_v star_n &_o angel_n so_o entitle_v apoc._n 1._o 20._o and_o that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o chief_a work_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o which_o double_a honour_n be_v due_a can_v without_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o magnify_v their_o ministry_n by_o the_o same_o title_n who_o either_o claim_n by_o privilege_n to_o be_v exempt_v from_o that_o great_a and_o necessary_a work_n of_o their_o call_n or_o load_v themselves_o with_o so_o many_o care_n and_o so_o much_o business_n not_o belong_v to_o their_o function_n that_o they_o can_v have_v a_o hour_n to_o think_v upon_o that_o service_n for_o which_o they_o be_v chief_o count_v star_n &_o angel_n or_o which_o be_v worse_o by_o their_o sole_a authority_n thrust_v out_o painful_a labourer_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o d._n know_v and_o profess_v as_o be_v abovesayd_a therefore_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o apparent_a contradiction_n which_o be_v to_o be_v wonder_v himself_o the_o doct._n contradict_v himself_o at_o and_o lament_v in_o magnify_v by_o the_o same_o title_n the_o function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n who_o either_o claim_v the_o former_a privilege_n etc._n etc._n now_o because_o the_o doctor_n only_a relief_n against_o these_o argument_n of_o the_o refuter_fw-la stand_v in_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o former_a i_o only_o desire_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o consider_v the_o answer_n before_o and_o hereafter_o make_v to_o his_o best_a proof_n draw_v either_o from_o his_o text_n or_o any_o other_o scripture_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o text_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o then_o to_o judge_v whether_o the_o large_a proof_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n and_o a_o gross_a contradict_v of_o himself_o chap._n 5._o concern_v the_o argument_n draw_v by_o the_o d._n from_o apoc._n 2._o 2._o and_o 20._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o sect_n 20._o pag._n 135._o 136._o have_v already_o sift_v all_o that_o the_o d._n have_v urge_v from_o his_o text_n for_o the_o singular_a pre-eminence_n and_o diocesan_n jurisdiction_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d sect._n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n we_o be_v now_o to_o proceed_v to_o that_o argument_n which_o himself_o syllogistical_o fram●th_v to_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v a_o corrective_a power_n over_o other_o
as_o with_o arrian_n as_o we_o be_v with_o man_n of_o another_o language_n 3._o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v how_o the_o doctor_n at_o unaware_o pull_v down_o with_o the_o one_o hand_n what_o he_o set_v up_o with_o the_o other_o for_o against_o this_o comparison_n between_o those_o church_n that_o live_v among_o the_o arrian_n and_o the_o french_a church_n among_o we_o allege_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o late_a be_v as_o he_o say_v the_o former_a were_z model_n of_o diocesan_n church_n i_o may_v return_v his_o own_o exception_n thus_o the_o french_a church_n can_v be_v model_n of_o diocesan_n church_n like_a as_o he_o suppose_v the_o other_o be_v because_o their_o presbytery_n consist_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o lay-man_n and_o want_v a_o bishop_n which_o they_o have_v neither_o be_v they_o place_v and_o retain_v for_o the_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o city_n and_o country_n to_o they_o as_o in_o the_o doctor_n conceit_n the_o ancient_a church_n among_o the_o arrian_n be_v for_o otherwise_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v convert_v as_o he_o argue_v pag._n 67._o and_o this_o also_o by_o the_o way_n weaken_v his_o argue_v to_o show_v that_o 6._o sect._n 6._o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n among_o we_o be_v no_o parish_n assembly_n for_o if_o they_o be_v neither_o diocesan_n nor_o model_n of_o diocesan_n church_n what_o else_o can_v they_o be_v then_o parish_n such_o at_o least_o as_o the_o refuter_fw-la in_o this_o question_n esteem_v to_o be_v parish_n or_o parishonall_a church_n 2._o but_o in_o this_o point_n he_o show_v himself_o what_o he_o be_v when_o know_v as_o be_v before_o note_a sect_n 3._o in_o what_o sense_n the_o refuter_fw-la hold_v those_o other_o the_o doct._n know_v the_o refut_o to_o speak_v in_o one_o sense_n ●●ieth_v to_o a_o other_o church_n and_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n to_o be_v parish_n he_o do_v notwithstanding_o fly_v to_o another_o sort_n of_o parish_n viz._n such_o as_o we_o now_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o subordinate_a to_o a_o other_o church_n as_o member_n thereof_o to_o his_o exception_n therefore_o in_o this_o behalf_n this_o reply_n may_v suffice_v that_o which_o be_v one_o church_n among_o many_o in_o one_o city_n be_v one_o parish_n or_o one_o congregation_n such_o as_o in_o this_o question_n we_o define_v a_o parish_n to_o be_v but_o the_o french_a church_n in_o london_n be_v one_o church_n among_o many_o in_o one_o city_n as_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v p._n 7._o 1_o it_o be_v therefore_o one_o parish_n as_o we_o understand_v a_o parish_n in_o this_o question_n again_o that_o which_o hinder_v not_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n among_o we_o fro_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n assemble_v to_o one_o place_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n do_v not_o hind●●_n they_o from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parish_n as_o we_o take_v a_o parish_n in_o this_o question_n but_o the_o doctor_n exception_n viz._n that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n do_v dwell_v in_o many_o distinct_a parish_n according_a to_o the_o circuit_n of_o our_o english_a division_n of_o parish_n in_o london_n and_o other_o place_n a●d_v that_o their_o church_n be_v endow_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o not_o subordinate_a to_o another_o church_n as_o member_n thereof_o these_o exception_n i_o say_v do_v not_o hinder_v the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n among_o we_o from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n assemble_v to_o one_o place_n for_o the_o wor-ship_n of_o god_n therefore_o neither_o do_v they_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o parish_n as_o we_o take_v a_o parish_n in_o this_o question_n as_o for_o that_o one_o speech_n insert_v touch_v the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n when_o he_o say_v they_o have_v a_o presbytery_n as_o the_o church_n ●●_o geneva_n have_v to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o once_o they_o have_v and_o still_o may_v have_v in_o a_o imitation_n of_o the_o ancient_a christinians_n i_o think_v it_o scarce_o savour_v of_o truth_n or_o at_o least_o argue_v forgetfulness_n in_o himself_o for_o if_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v a_o bishop_n once_o in_o e●●e_n and_o still_o in_o poss●_n himself_n the_o doct._n speech_n either_o be_v untrue_a or_o else_o contradict_v himself_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n here_o in_o england_n where_o do_v alasco_n say_v that_o they_o once_o have_v a_o bishop_n and_o how_o know_v he_o that_o our_o bishop_n will_v suffer_v they_o to_o have_v in_o each_o church_n a_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o if_o to_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n as_o he_o need_v not_o alascoes_n testimony_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o once_o have_v a_o bishop_n so_o in_o say_v that_o they_o now_o may_v have_v a_o bishop_n what_o else_o do_v he_o but_o contradict_v here_o what_o he_o earnest_o plead_v for_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 166_o viz._n that_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o geneva_n neither_o in_o the_o first_o reformation_n can_v neither_o now_o can_v obtain_v the_o government_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v settle_v among_o they_o though_o they_o will_v but_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o meet_v with_o the_o doctor_n slipping_n this_o way_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o refuter_n regestion_n when_o he_o strike_v at_o the_o doctor_n with_o his_o own_o weapon_n in_o this_o manner_n ●●_o there_o be_v no_o parish_n 8_o sect._n 7._o add_v p._n 70._o lin_v 8_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n how_o can_v there_o be_v diocese_n see_v every_o diocese_n consist_v of_o diverse_a distinct_a parish_n the_o doctor_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v but_o a_o flourish_v and_o a_o kind_n of_o answer_n that_o best_o fit_v he_o that_o be_v at_o a_o nonplus_n but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o answer_n be_v very_o usual_a with_o divine_n nothing_o inferior_a to_o he_o either_o in_o school_n learning_n or_o divinity_n &_o that_o to_o contradict_v any_o assertion_n belong_v to_o the_o question_n aswell_o as_o the_o conclusion_n principal_o controvert_v do_v not_o the_o d._n know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o course_n hold_v by_o mr_n sadeel_n in_o all_o his_o theological_a &_o scholastical_a disputation_n yea_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n of_o special_a use_n to_o put_v the_o adverse_a part_n to_o a_o nonplus_n or_o at_o least_o to_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n see_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o argument_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n though_o the_o doctor_n patience_n be_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_v with_o it_o but_o see_v we_o how_o he_o bestir_v himself_o to_o escape_v the_o stroke_n of_o it_o good_a sir_n say_v he_o what_o be_v this_o to_o my_o consequence_n again_o to_o what_o end_n be_v this_o speak_v to_o deny_v my_o consequence_n or_o the_o main_a conclusion_n and_o a_o little_a after_o therefore_o when_o he_o will_v s●●me_v to_o deny_v the_o consequence_n of_o the_o proposition_a he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v it_o but_o by_o take_v a_o suppose_a advantage_n against_o the_o assumption_n he_o d●ni●th_v the_o principal_a conclusion_n good_a mr._n d._n with_o your_o patience_n be_v there_o no_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o conclusion_n and_o the_o retort_v of_o a_o argument_n against_o it_o and_o be_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o if_o your_o main_a conclusion_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n so_o that_o the_o consequence_n of_o one_o of_o your_o argument_n stand_v upright_n but_o it_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o the_o refuter_fw-la when_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o impugn_v your_o consequence_n to_o pass_v by_o it_o and_o to_o set_v upon_o your_o conclusion_n when_o you_o think_v it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o guard_v belike_o you_o look_v not_o for_o such_o a_o stratagem_n at_o his_o hand_n who_o you_o take_v to_o be_v amaze_v at_o the_o fight_n of_o your_o argument_n as_o you_o say_v pag._n 71_o and_o so_o shallow_a conceit_a when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o best_a wit_n that_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v you_o pa._n 80._o he_o can_v see_v no_o further_o than_o his_o nose_n end_n yet_o perhaps_o if_o you_o have_v see_v your_o consequence_n touch_v by_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o answer_n you_o will_v not_o have_v blame_v he_o ●_o for_o run_v out_o against_o your_o conclusion_n before_o he_o give_v the_o onset_n to_o your_o assumption_n but_o to_o let_v your_o scoff_v alone_o tell_v we_o in_o good_a earnest_n do_v you_o think_v your_o consequence_n be_v altogether_o out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o this_o his_o regestion_n as_o you_o call_v it_o do_v it_o not_o rather_o fall_v with_o the_o conclusion_n for_o how_o can_v presbytery_n be_v appoint_v to_o diocese_n when_o there_o be_v none_o if_o therefore_o the_o want_n of_o
no_o cheiftie_a or_o pre-eminence_n to_o any_o one_o above_o the_o rest_n neither_o perpetual_a not_o temporary_a in_o any_o pastoral_n duty_n of_o feed_v or_o govern_v the_o people_n depend_v on_o they_o see_v in_o his_o conceit_n they_o have_v neither_o bishop_n nor_o precedent_n to_o guide_v the_o or_o to_o moderate_v their_o meeting_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o as_o he_o suppose_v retain_v all_o episcopal_a government_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n which_o confuse_a parity_n or_o rather_o anarchy_n as_o it_o be_v never_o embrace_v of_o any_o reform_a church_n in_o these_o last_o time_n so_o it_o can_v without_o wrong_v &_o disgrace_n to_o the_o apostle_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o their_o ordinance_n as_o for_o the_o apostle_n word_n to_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n acts._n 20._o 28._o the_o doctor_n seem_v inconstant_a and_o at_o odds_o with_o himself_o 75._o sect._n 13._o add_v sect_n 7._o p._n 75._o in_o the_o application_n of_o they_o for_o he_o first_o quote_v that_o text_n serm_n p._n 18_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v in_o common_a to_o attend_v the_o whole_a flock_n convert_v feed_v they_o with_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n where_o note_n that_o he_o limit_v the_o word_n flock_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o feed_v to_o the_o company_n already_o convert_v which_o argue_v as_o may_v well_o be_v suppose_v that_o he_o do_v not_o then_o conceive_v the_o residue_n of_o the_o city_n and_o country_n yet_o unconvert_v to_o be_v any_o part_n of_o that_o flock_n or_o 29._o the_o d._n agree_v not_o with_o himself_o in_o the_o applicatio_fw-la of_o act._n 20._o 29._o church_n there_o speak_v of_o but_o now_o he_o streatch_v both_o word_n to_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o all_o which_o in_o city_n and_o country_n belong_v to_o god_n and_o be_v by_o their_o ministry_n to_o be_v convert_v and_o rockon_v it_o as_o we_o hear_v before_o sect_n 7._o one_o of_o the_o refuter_n indigested_a fancy_n to_o restrain_v the_o flock_n over_o which_o those_o presbyter_n be_v set_v unto_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n already_o convert_v hear_v we_o now_o the_o reason_n that_o persuade_v he_o to_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o he_o use_v not_o to_o do_v and_o undo_v without_o reason_n first_o he_o urge_v the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n flock_n john_n 10._o 16._o where_o the_o flock_n he_o faith_n be_v that_o for_o which_o the_o good_a shepherd_n give_v his_o life_n unto_o which_o apperteyn_v the_o sheep_n which_o his_o father_n give_v he_o even_o the_o elect_v not_o yet_o convert_v as_o he_o say_v pag._n 66._o not_o only_o among_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o gentle_n also_o even_o that_o church_n which_o god_n meaning_n christ_n who_o be_v god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v redeem_v with_o his_o blood_n acts._n 20._o 28_o and_o that_o people_n of_o he_o which_o he_o save_v from_o their_o sin_n but_o how_o will_v he_o from_o his_o allegation_n infer_v that_o the_o flock_n in_o which_o those_o presbyter_n be_v set_v as_o overseer_n act._n 20._o 28._o be_v the_o people_n belong_v to_o god_n aswell_o unconvert_v as_o convert_v in_o the_o city_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o country_n adjoin_v do_v not_o himself_o weaken_v the_o consequence_n when_o he_o faith_n this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n yea_o but_o he_o proceed_v to_o say_v so_o the_o company_n of_o they_o that_o belong_v to_o christ_n in_o any_o nation_n province_n diocese_n city_n or_o parish_n may_v be_v call_v the_o flock_n the_o church_n the_o people_n of_o god_n well_o then_o if_o the_o company_n of_o faithful_a in_o one_o parish_n may_v be_v call_v the_o flock_n and_o church_n of_o god_n aswell_o as_o a_o large_a society_n of_o such_o as_o belong_v unto_o god_n in_o a_o nation_n province_n or_o diocese_n be_v not_o the_o doctor_n yet_o as_o far_o to_o seek_v as_o at_o the_o first_o for_o a_o find_v reason_n to_o persuade_v his_o conscience_n that_o the_o people_n yet_o unvert_v but_o belong_v to_o god_n election_n throughout_o the_o diocese_n or_o province_n of_o ephesus_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o church_n which_o those_o presbyter_n be_v charge_v to_o attend_v to_o and_o feed_v may_v not_o a_o man_n with_o half_a a_o eye_n discern_v that_o a_o greedy_a desire_n to_o contradict_v his_o refuters_n assertion_n have_v instead_o of_o better_a reason_n preveyl_v with_o he_o or_o rather_o as_o he_o wrongful_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la pag._n 73._o so_o transport_v he_o that_o he_o care_v not_o how_o shameful_o he_o contradict_v himself_o so_o as_o he_o may_v gainsay_v his_o adversary_n present_a assertion_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o worse_a fault_n that_o accompany_v this_o change_n of_o opinion_n in_o he_o for_o he_o absurd_o consound_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o christian_a professor_n know_v unto_o man_n with_o the_o invisible_a church_n or_o flock_n of_o god_n elect_v know_v only_o to_o himself_o yea_o we_o may_v thereunto_o charge_n the_o d._n co●radicteth_v himself_o con_fw-mi found_v the_o visible_a &_o invisible_a church_n &_o make_v the_o apostle_n author_n of_o a_o senseless_a charge_n add_v a_o three_o fault_n no_o less_o absurd_a than_o the_o former_a when_o he_o makerh_fw-mi the_o apostle_n paul_n the_o author_n of_o a_o senseless_a charge_n impose_v on_o the_o presbyter_n viz._n to_o attend_v on_o a_o flock_n the_o number_n and_o part_n whereof_o they_o neither_o know_v nor_o can_v know_v and_o to_o feed_v with_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n such_o as_o be_v not_o yet_o beget_v unto_o the_o faith_n attend_v we_o now_o a_o little_a to_o the_o advantage_n which_o he_o make_v to_o his_o ●ause_n from_o this_o text_n &_o to_o his_o removal_n of_o the_o disadvantage_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la draw_v from_o thence_o if_o say_v he_o they_o be_v to_o attend_v the_o whole_a flock_n in_o common_a then_o be_v they_o not_o assign_v to_o several_a parish_n which_o be_v but_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o which_o purpose_n the_o place_n of_o the_o act_n be_v 14._o sect._n 14._o quote_v before_o he_o borrow_v as_o be_v observe_v sect_n 10._o the_o first_o branch_n of_o his_o assumption_n to_o justify_v the_o second_o &_o now_o the_o second_o be_v fortify_v by_o the_o three_o so_o that_o his_o own_o pen_n make_v he_o guilty_a of_o the_o fault_n which_o upon_o far_o less_o cause_n he_o impute_v pag._n 55._o to_o himself_o mark_n whethe_o d._n be_v not_o confoun-ded_n in_o himself_o his_o refuter_fw-la scz_fw-fr to_o bring_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o syllogism_n two_o argument_n which_o tend_v to_o justify_v the_o main_a point_n of_o the_o assumption_n consider_v this_o well_o and_o with_o all_o remember_v that_o the_o 4._o point_n be_v a_o bare_a repetition_n of_o that_o which_o he_o urge_v in_o the_o former_a argumet_n as_o be_v show_v sect_n 1._o yea_o observe_v further_o that_o the_o second_o parr_n of_o his_o assumption_n which_o by_o this_o reckon_n be_v the_o only_a main_a point_n of_o his_o argument_n be_v make_v a_o part_n of_o the_o consequence_n of_o his_o proposition_n as_o appear_v sect_n 2._o by_o all_o which_o lay_v together_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o argument_n of_o he_o separatis_fw-la separandis_fw-la be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o conclude_a of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o same_o in_o this_o manner_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o presbyter_n be_v not_o assign_v to_o several_a cure_n whereby_o he_o mean_v parish_n ergo_fw-la in_o their_o time_n they_o be_v not_o appoint_v to_o parish_n but_o to_o come_v to_o his_o inference_n deduce_v from_o the_o place_n of_o the_o acts._n which_o he_o quote_v if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o his_o word_n intimate_v that_o several_a parish_n be_v part_n of_o the_o flock_n which_o the_o presbyter_n be_v charge_v to_o attend_v how_o can_v there_o be_v a_o truth_n in_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o assumption_n which_o deni_v parish_n to_o be_v distinguish_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n must_v he_o not_o fall_v a_o ase_a at_o least_o low_a than_o before_o when_o he_o say_v pag._n 63._o sect_n 6._o that_o his_o assertion_n touch_v church_n not_o divide_v into_o parish_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v ●●_o epi_fw-la to_o plaiston_n as_o true_a of_o most_o church_n i_o may_v ask_v he_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o presbyter_n shall_v hold_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o flock_n in_o common_a if_o it_o have_v several_a parish_n for_o the_o part_n thereof_o &_o how_o the_o flock_n can_v be_v undistinguished_a or_o attend_v on_o in_o common_a if_o the_o charge_v give_v to_o the_o presbyter_n be_v such_o as_o upon_o like_a occasion_n may_v by_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o visitation_n be_v apply_v to_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o a_o diocese_n as_o he_o afterward_o affirm_v pag._n 105._o will_n it_o not_o be_v doct._n a_o contradiction_n in_o the_o doct._n hard_o think_v you_o
diocese_n but_o however_o the_o d._n may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n whole_o leave_v out_o the_o age_n follow_v or_o wander_v for_o his_o proof_n beyond_o that_o compass_n to_o constantine_n day_n and_o the_o age_n follow_v his_o time_n yet_o his_o refuter_fw-la must_v be_v bind_v to_o the_o stake_n precise_o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o also_o in_o the_o age_n follow_v parish_n proper_o &_o not_o diocese_n yea_o even_o then_o when_o he_o discern_v pag._n 100_o that_o two_o rank_n of_o instance_n be_v produce_v to_o prove_v the_o conclusion_n which_o himself_o tender_v the_o former_a take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o late_a out_o of_o the_o father_n he_o will_v fain_o enforce_v he_o to_o stretch_v his_o scripture_n testimony_n to_o the_o whole_a term_n of_o 200_o year_n a_o thing_n unreasonable_a and_o such_o as_o argue_v his_o seek_v rather_o by_o some_o evasion_n to_o elude_v then_o by_o direct_a answer_n to_o infringe_v that_o which_o be_v object_v but_o see_v the_o question_n be_v distinct_a and_o require_v confirmation_n by_o testimony_n of_o a_o differ_a nature_n for_o the_o scripture_n must_v determine_v what_o be_v the_o form_n or_o constitution_n of_o church_n institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o must_v search_v after_o humane_a testimony_n to_o find_v out_o the_o first_o orginall_n of_o multiply_v of_o parish_n in_o city_n &_o of_o combyne_v many_o congregation_n in_o one_o diocesan_n body_n i_o will_v therefore_o with_o the_o doct._n leave_n first_o take_v a_o view_n of_o that_o which_o be_v object_v &_o answer_v touch_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v of_o great_a note_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o begin_v then_o with_o the_o objection_n which_o himself_o propound_v 79._o sect._n 2._o 2d_o pag._n 79._o it_o seem_v by_o his_o own_o enthymem_fw-la pag_n 79._o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o contradict_v not_o the_o main_a question_n though_o he_o so_o affirm_v but_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o 2._o last_o argument_n which_o he_o reduce_v to_o the_o main_a conclusion_n pag_n 64._o and_o because_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la carry_v it_o to_o the_o principal_a question_n to_o make_v it_o more_o strong_a for_o his_o advantage_n i_o will_v apply_v it_o to_o the_o point_n whereat_o he_o aim_v with_o a_o supply_n only_o of_o those_o word_n which_o be_v by_o he_o suppress_v yet_o necessary_a to_o be_v add_v the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n together_o with_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n be_v assign_v each_o of_o they_o but_o to_o one_o particular_a ordi●●try_n congregation_n assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n therefore_o they_o be_v assign_v but_o to_o a_o parish_n and_o not_o to_o a_o diocese_n to_o the_o consequent_a i_o add_v these_o word_n but_o for_o a_o parish_n to_o make_v the_o contradiction_n the_o more_o full_a because_o his_o conclusion_n affirm_v that_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v appoint_v not_o to_o parish_n but_o to_o diocese_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n i_o also_o add_v to_o the_o antecedent_n these_o word_n ord●yned_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o enthymem_n rely_v upon_o this_o inference_n one_o particular_a ordinary_a congregation_n assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n be_v a_o parish_n and_o not_o a_o diocese_n therefore_o what_o be_v provide_v but_o for_o one_o such_o congregation_n the_o same_o be_v provide_v but_o for_o a_o parish_n and_o not_o for_o a_o diocese_n this_o latter_a connexion_n can_v be_v impugn_a the_o consequent_a or_o conclusion_n be_v the_o proposition_n which_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o former_a enthymem_n the_o antecedent_n be_v a_o truth_n agree_v upon_o on_o both_o party_n in_o this_o controversy_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o d._n lay_v down_o of_o their_o assertion_n against_o who_o he_o dispute_v serm_n pag._n 4._o and_o in_o affirm_v here_o def_n pag._n 79._o that_o for_o brevity_n sake_n he_o first_o omit_v this_o argument_n desyre_v in_o few_o word_n to_o bring_v our_o obiction_n to_o the_o issue_n he_o give_v allowance_n to_o the_o consequence_n thereof_o only_o he_o dislike_v that_o confirmation_n deliver_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la for_o clear_v the_o consequence_n of_o his_o proposition_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v before_o show_v that_o a_o diocese_n must_v consist_v of_o distinct_a congregation_n for_o say_v he_o i●_n proposition_n have_v no_o better_a hypothesis_n to_o support_v it_o i_o may_v deny_v it_o see_v i_o have_v prove_v before_o that_o there_o be_v diocese_n in_o the_o first_o conception_n of_o the_o church_n before_o distinction_n of_o parish_n but_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o he_o have_v no_o better_a argument_n to_o impugn_v the_o proposition_n or_o consequence_n thereof_o then_o so_o slender_a a_o proof_n as_o that_o be_v whereof_o he_o boast_v i_o need_v not_o seek_v any_o new_a prop_n to_o uphold_v it_o it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o refer_v he_o to_o that_o which_o be_v already_o say_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n sect_n 9_o where_o he_o may_v if_o he_o shut_v not_o his_o eye_n see_v it_o prove_v by_o the_o escope_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n that_o the_o apostolic_a church_n before_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n in_o the_o city_n &_o country_n annex_v can_v not_o any_o otherwise_o be_v proper_o diocese_n than_o a_o child_n in_o the_o womb_n can_v be_v perfict_a man_n before_o his_o body_n have_v the_o distinct_a member_n so_o that_o to_o return_v he_o his_o own_o phrase_n the_o addition_n of_o this_o answer_n have_v make_v his_o cause_n somewhat_o worse_o than_o it_o be_v before_o now_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o antecedent_n before_o 79._o sect._n 3._o ad_fw-la 79._o mention_v viz._n that_o the_o presbytery_n and_o their_o precedent_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v assign_v each_o of_o they_o but_o to_o one_o particular_a ordinary_a congregation_n asseble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n the_o doctor_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o blame_v we_o though_o we_o shall_v refuse_v to_o maintain_v the_o argument_n which_o he_o frame_v for_o we_o for_o i_o suppose_v none_o of_o our_o side_n be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o deliver_v for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o that_o assertion_n which_o he_o tender_v to_o we_o to_o wit_n that_o in_o the_o first_o 200._o year_n all_o the_o christian_n in_o any_o one_o great_a city_n make_v but_o one_o such_o congregation_n wherefore_o till_o he_o produce_v his_o author_n from_o who_o he_o receive_v this_o argument_n i_o will_v pray_v leave_n to_o think_v he_o forge_v it_o for_o his_o own_o advantage_n that_o his_o reader_n may_v judge_v he_o have_v get_v the_o conquest_n though_o he_o only_o throw_v down_o a_o rot_a post_n of_o his_o own_o set_n up_o for_o to_o conclude_v the_o former_a antecedent_n it_o may_v suffice_v to_o assume_v thus_o much_o to_o wit_n that_o all_o the_o member_n of_o those_o church_n whereunto_o the_o presbytery_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n make_v but_o one_o particular_a ordinary_a congregation_n assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n against_o which_o proposition_n right_o understand_v of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n receive_v their_o presbytery_n and_o precedent_n by_o the_o apostle_n ordination_n i_o find_v no_o just_a exception_n take_v either_o in_o his_o sermon_n or_o this_o defence_n see_v in_o both_o he_o wander_v beyond_o the_o apostle_n day_n to_o the_o age_n follow_v whereof_o he_o have_v not_o speak_v one_o word_n in_o all_o that_o he_o have_v urge_v hitherto_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o his_o main_n conclusion_n see_v then_o the_o question_n be_v what_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o give_v presbytery_n to_o they_o if_o we_o say_v they_o exceed_v not_o one_o congregation_n be_v it_o not_o a_o frivolous_a cavil_n to_o answer_v that_o they_o far_o exceed_v the_o proportion_n of_o one_o congregation_n in_o the_o next_o age_n follow_v and_o the_o late_a part_n thereof_o it_o be_v apparent_a therefore_o that_o these_o clause_n in_o the_o first_o two_o hundred_o year_n &_o in_o the_o age_n follow_v the_o apostle_n be_v insert_v into_o this_o question_n by_o the_o doctor_n both_o here_o and_o afterward_o pa._n 100_o only_o to_o give_v he_o some_o colour_n of_o a_o just_a exception_n against_o his_o refuter_n reason_v and_o some_o excuse_n for_o his_o slide_n from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o the_o age_n follow_v but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o impugn_v the_o argument_n frame_v by_o he_o 80._o sect_n 4._o 2d_o 79._o &_o 80._o self_n in_o this_o enthymem_fw-la in_o the_o first_o two_o hundred_o year_n all_o the_o christian_n in_o any_o one_o great_a city_n make_v but_o one_o particular_a ordinary_a congregation_n assemble_v
ergo_fw-la also_o the_o second_o to_o make_v good_a the_o consequence_n of_o the_o proposition_n he_o say_v that_o it_o stand_v upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o the_o doctor_n himself_o lay_v in_o the_o first_o argument_n draw_v from_o his_o text_n neither_o be_v he_o therein_o deceive_v for_o in_o this_o defence_n cap._n 2._o sect_n 2._o he_o confess_v that_o he_o presuppose_v all_o other_o church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n to_o be_v like_a to_o those_o 7_o because_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o the_o primitive_a church_n endue_v with_o that_o power_n be_v of_o like_a nature_n and_o constitution_n but_o the_o doctor_n buri_v all_o this_o in_o silence_n and_o as_o if_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v entreat_v that_o the_o consequence_n may_v pass_v without_o controlment_n he_o seem_v unwilling_a to_o yield_v he_o so_o much_o favour_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o use_v another_o which_o he_o say_v be_v like_a viz._n that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o rome_n be_v not_o parishonall_a church_n in_o the_o first_o 200_o year_n he_o mean_v unto_o the_o full_a end_n of_o that_o term_n than_o neither_o be_v the_o church_n of_o other_o city_n and_o then_o tell_v we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o parishonall_a church_n as_o for_o rome_n he_o have_v prove_v and_o for_o alexandria_n will_v prove_v &_o therefore_o conclude_v so_o of_o the_o rest_n well_o let_v we_o reason_n a_o little_a with_o he_o be_v the_o consequence_n indeed_o the_o same_o so_o he_o say_v but_o do_v he_o speak_v as_o he_o be_v persuade_v if_o not_o why_o set_v he_o such_o a_o face_n of_o truth_n upon_o a_o lie_n if_o yea_o why_o inwrap_v he_o his_o own_o foot_n in_o the_o snare_n that_o he_o lay_v for_o another_o for_o whether_o he_o disclaim_v or_o allow_v the_o consequence_n and_o the_o hypothesis_n whereon_o it_o be_v ground_v will_v he_o will_v he_o he_o must_v bear_v the_o blame_n of_o a_o foul_a contradiction_n to_o disclaim_v it_o be_v to_o overthrow_v as_o before_o be_v note_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o own_o argument_n pa._n 42._o to_o allow_v it_o be_v to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o d._n a_o foul_a cotradiction_n in_o the_o d._n that_o assumption_n which_o he_o urge_v for_o a_o double_a advantage_n p._n 69_o &_o 122._o lin_v 1._o for_o if_o that_o may_v be_v verify_v of_o all_o other_o church_n which_o he_o avouch_v here_o and_o pag._n 124_o for_o certainty_n of_o alexandria_n and_o elsewhere_o pag_n 50_o and_o 122_o deni_v probable_a in_o some_o other_o then_o by_o the_o like_a consequence_n alike_o ground_v on_o the_o same_o hypothesis_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o all_o other_o church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v also_o divide_v into_o diverse_a parish_n even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n deserve_v not_o the_o d._n now_o to_o be_v beat_v with_o his_o own_o cudgel_n pag_n 73._o be_v it_o credible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o transport_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o contradiction_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o care_v so_o he_o may_v gainsay_v his_o adversary_n present_a affertion_n how_o shamefally_o he_o contradict_v himself_o yet_o thus_o it_o fare_v with_o the_o doctor_n notwithstanding_o i_o can_v easy_o free_v the_o refuter_fw-la from_o that_o disadvantage_n which_o the_o d._n conclusion_n threaten_v for_o we_o can_v and_o will_v hold_v our_o own_o consequence_n for_o a_o truth_n on_o both_o part_n already_o assent_v to_o till_o we_o hear_v he_o direct_o contradict_v the_o hypothesis_n whereon_o it_o be_v ground_v as_o himself_o acknowledge_v viz._n that_o all_o church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v at_o the_o first_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o constitution_n but_o the_o late_a shall_v hang_v in_o suspense_n till_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o same_o hypothesis_n for_o in_o our_o apprehension_n his_o consequence_n presuppose_v that_o all_o church_n be_v alike_o not_o in_o that_o nature_n and_o constitution_n wherein_o they_o stand_v at_o the_o first_o but_o in_o this_o alteration_n wherein_o alexandria_n &_o rome_n go_v before_o other_o namely_o to_o be_v distinguish_v into_o many_o parish_n whereas_o all_o at_o their_o first_o plant_n be_v undistinguish_v as_o himself_o confess_v to_o pass_v therefore_o forward_o to_o the_o assumption_n because_o the_o 102._o sect._n 2._o add_v sect_n 2._o pag._n 102._o refuter_fw-la say_v it_o appear_v plain_a by_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o particular_n mr._n d._n ask_v whether_o his_o syllogism_n be_v so_o soon_o come_v to_o a_o end_n and_o perceive_v that_o his_o chief_a proof_n be_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n time_n each_o of_o they_o use_v to_o assemble_v in_o one_o congregation_n he_o further_o ask_v whether_o this_o be_v his_o assumption_n whereto_o i_o answer_v that_o for_o brevity_n sake_n the_o refuter_fw-la omit_v the_o contrive_n of_o his_o proof_n into_o form_n of_o syllogistical_a reason_n presume_v as_o the_o doct._n say_v elsewhere_o in_o his_o own_o defence_n pag_n 79._o that_o any_o man_n may_v from_o that_o which_o the_o doct._n observe_v to_o be_v his_o chief_a drift_n conclude_v his_o assumption_n thus_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n ephesus_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v each_o of_o they_o in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n time_n no_o more_o then_o ordinary_o assemble_v in_o one_o place_n therefore_o they_o be_v each_o of_o they_o at_o that_o time_n but_o one_o parish_n but_o the_o doctor_n have_v wrong_v his_o refuter_fw-la before_o by_o stretch_v his_o assumption_n beyond_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o full_a term_n of_o 200_o year_n hold_v on_o and_o double_v the_o wrong_n by_o retain_v the_o same_o addition_n of_o 200._o year_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o more_o colour_n to_o cavil_n with_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o argument_n &_o to_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la with_o play_v the_o sophister_n in_o take_v that_o for_o grant_v which_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o viz._n that_o each_o of_o those_o church_n continue_v one_o congregation_n and_o so_o one_o parish_n for_o 200._o year_n because_o they_o be_v but_o one_o congregation_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n wherefore_o what_o he_o object_v to_o infringe_v this_o consequence_n i_o overpasse_v as_o unworthy_a the_o answer_n see_v he_o forge_v it_o for_o the_o nonce_n to_o cavil_n with_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o entoymem_n before_o set_v down_o presuppose_v a_o truth_n in_o this_o assertion_n scz_o that_o those_o church_n be_v parish_n who_o people_n be_v no_o more_o than_o such_o as_o ordinary_o assemble_v in_o one_o place_n and_o the_o refuter_fw-la deem_v it_o a_o vame_n of_o time_n and_o labour_n yea_o mere_a folly_n to_o call_v into_o question_n that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o doctor_n assent_v unto_o serm_n p._n 4_o viz._n that_o when_o we_o affirm_v and_o he_o deni_v every_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v proper_o a_o parish_n by_o a_o parish_n be_v mean_v a_o particular_a ordinary_a congregation_n of_o christian_n assemble_v in_o one_o place_n to_o the_o solemn_a service_n of_o god_n wherefore_o in_o deny_v now_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o argument_n before_o deliver_v what_o else_o do_v he_o but_o play_v the_o wrangler_n for_o he_o that_o mean_v true_o to_o bring_v the_o matter_n controvert_v to_o the_o right_a issue_n will_v never_o offer_v to_o gainsay_v what_o be_v certain_a and_o confess_v and_o because_o he_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o denial_n be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a cap._n 3._o sect_n 5._o &_o 6._o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o i_o find_v nothing_o there_o that_o direct_o control_v the_o hypothesis_n of_o our_o consequence_n here_o to_o wit_n that_o every_o church_n which_o make_v but_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n be_v a_o parish_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v there_o say_v touch_v the_o point_n then_o in_o hand_n it_o be_v sufficient_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n overthrow_v already_o wherefore_o let_v we_o hear_v those_o 2._o reason_n which_o for_o a_o surplusage_n as_o he_o say_v he_o now_o add_v the_o first_o be_v this_o if_o these_o church_n because_o they_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o congregation_n be_v parish_n 103._o sect._n 3._o ad_fw-la pag._n 103._o before_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n then_o they_o be_v such_o church_n as_o after_o the_o division_n parish_n be_v but_o they_o be_v not_o such_o church_n i_o will_v add_v the_o conclusion_n ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v they_o parish_n before_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n because_o they_o be_v each_o of_o they_o one_o congregation_n first_o i_o pray_v the_o doctor_n to_o tell_v we_o what_o move_v he_o to_o tumble_v into_o the_o conclusion_n and_o consequent_a of_o the_o proposition_n this_o clause_n before_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n where_o
he_o mainteyn_v touch_v timothy_n their_o bishop_n in_o his_o account_n serm_v pag._n 79._o and_o 80._o and_o def._n lib._n 4._o pag._n 90._o viz._n that_o he_o be_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n till_o after_o paul_n deliverance_n from_o his_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o if_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v then_o in_o asia_n 1._o cor._n 16._o 19_o stand_v in_o any_o subordination_n to_o ephesus_n as_o the_o mother-church_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n why_o shall_v not_o ephesus_n have_v some_o note_n of_o principality_n give_v unto_o it_o above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n apoc._n 1._o and_o 2_o but_o himself_o reckon_v they_o all_o alike_o principal_a lib._n 2._o pag._n 43._o lin_v 2._o at_o the_o least_o equal_v 4._o other_o with_o ephesus_n in_o the_o dignity_n of_o mother-city_n p●_n 63._o follow_a three_o concern_v the_o church_n at_o antioch_n rather_o than_o the_o d._n will_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o people_n thereof_o assemble_v together_o in_o one_o 105._o sect._n 7._o 2d_o pag._n 105._o place_n which_o the_o refuter_fw-la gather_v from_o acts._n 14._o 27._o he_o indeavour_v to_o elude_v the_o testimony_n by_o a_o frivolous_a evasion_n that_o have_v no_o appearance_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v apparent_a say_v he_o that_o not_o all_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o busbande_n and_o wyve_n their_o child_n and_o servant_n but_o some_o of_o the_o cheese_n and_o principal_a perhaps_o not_o many_o perhaps_o not_o any_o beside_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n be_v call_v to_o that_o meeting_n thus_o he_o say_v but_o why_o do_v he_o not_o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o reason_n that_o make_v this_o apparent_a to_o his_o sense_n do_v he_o think_v still_o to_o win_v credit_n by_o his_o bare_a word_n when_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n commend_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o that_o work_n which_o they_o have_v now_o fulfil_v will_v he_o say_v that_o the_o laity_n for_o the_o great_a part_n or_o at_o least_o wife_n child_n and_o servant_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o liturgy_n fast_v and_o prayer_n which_o be_v then_o perform_v act._n 13._o 2._o 3_o do_v not_o himself_o acknowledge_v the_o liturgy_n to_o be_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o congregation_n serm_v of_o the_o dig_v and_o duty_n of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 25._o lin_v penult_n be_v it_o not_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sound_a divine_n leitourgein_o significat_fw-la say_v aretius_n upon_o that_o place_n talieta_fw-la ergazein_fw-la publica_fw-la obire_fw-la muni●_n collectaerat_fw-la ecclian_n say_v zanchius_n the_o oper_n redempt_n pag._n 714._o quta_n lucas_n ait_fw-fr lcitourgo●ntoon_n autoon_n if_o they_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o that_o church_n without_o exception_n of_o age_n sex_n or_o outward_a estate_n join_v in_o prayer_n and_o fast_v when_o they_o be_v separate_v to_o the_o work_n shall_v we_o think_v they_o disdeyn_v to_o assemble_v the_o whole_a or_o make_v special_a choice_n of_o few_o when_o they_o gather_v the_o church_n together_o to_o relate_v unto_o they_o what_o god_n have_v wrought_v by_o their_o ministry_n be_v it_o not_o safe_a &_o most_o consonant_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o sound_a interpret_n the_o text_n to_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n here_o the_o multitude_n and_o not_o the_o clergy_n only_o or_o some_o few_o principal_a man_n see_v in_o another_o case_n &_o not_o long_o after_o it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o they_o which_o be_v send_v with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n to_o antioch_n from_o the_o synod_n at_o ireusalcm_n sunagago_fw-la ntes_fw-la to_o p●thos_fw-la have_v gather_v together_o the_o multitude_n deliver_v the_o epistle_n y_fw-fr 2_o the_o d._n himself_o quote_v both_o this_o text_n acts._n 14._o 27._o and_o those_o before_o handle_v touch_v the_o corinthian_a church_n 1._o cor._n 11._o 18._o 23_o as_o signify_v the_o church_n of_o a_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v congregate_a into_o a_o congregation_n pag_n 4._o of_o this_o book_n wherefore_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o in_o contradict_v his_o refuter_n proof_n from_o the_o scripture_n he_o do_v but_o labour_n to_o obscure_v the_o light_n which_o himself_o discern_v well_o enough_o but_o be_v loath_a that_o other_o shall_v apprehend_v his_o other_o testimony_n be_v out_o of_o eusebius_n ignatius_n and_o some_o 4._o sect._n 8._o 2d_o pag._n 105._o sect_n 4._o of_o our_o own_o writer_n as_o the_o d._n say_v of_o all_o which_o this_o be_v his_o grave_a censure_n in_o general_n that_o they_o be_v soarce_a worth_n the_o mencion_n &_o yet_o he_o do_v his_o best_a to_o wrest_v they_o out_o of_o his_o refuter_n hand_n let_v we_o see_v how_o well_o he_o do_v it_o first_o out_o of_o eusebius_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o he_o eall_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n ephesus_n and_o antioch_n paroikias_fw-la that_o be_v parish_n and_o because_o the_o d._n have_v insert_v serm_n pag._n 4._o and_o 26._o something_a to_o persuade_v that_o eusebius_n and_o other_o take_v the_o word_n in_o a_o large_a sense_n to_o wit_n for_o the_o whole_a diocese_n or_o at_o least_o for_o city_n and_o suburb_n though_o contain_v many_o particular_a parish_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o eusebius_n take_v the_o word_n as_o we_o do_v for_o one_o particular_a congregation_n of_o christian_n he_o urge_v that_o phrase_n which_o he_o ask_v concern_v timothees_n bishopric_n which_o he_o say_v be_v of_o the_o parish_n in_o ephesus_n now_o it_o be_v say_v the_o refuter_fw-la a_o strange_a kind_n of_o spach_v ●r_n eusebius_n to_o term_v the_o diocese_n or_o the_o whole_a city_n and_o suburb_n of_o ephesus_n the_o parish_n of_o ephesus_n for_o who_o will_v say_v the_o parish_n in_o london_n for_o the_o diosese_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n see_v the_o whole_a city_n be_v not_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o diocise_n and_o add_v that_o as_o eusebius_n call_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n one_o parish_n in_o ephesus_n so_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o christian_n in_o a_o province_n he_o call_v their_o several_a company_n assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n parish_n or_o church_n as_o of_o crete_n pontus_n etc._n etc._n lib._n 3._o ca._n 4._o &_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 22._o to_o all_o which_o the_o doctor_n make_v a_o slight_a answer_n first_o refer_v we_o to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v before_o speak_v touch_v the_o ancient_a use_n of_o the_o word_n paroikia_fw-la cap._n 1._o pag._n 11._o where_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n that_o either_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o main_a objection_n touch_v the_o parith_n in_o ephesus_n or_o give_v any_o colour_n of_o answer_n to_o it_o therefore_o he_o add_v that_o eusebius_n as_o he_o use_v the_o proposition_n en_fw-fr so_o sometime_o kata_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o which_o be_v false_a and_o have_v nothing_o to_o cover_v the_o naked_a falsehood_n of_o it_o unto_o ignatius_n who_o witness_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o his_o time_n come_v together_o ipi_fw-la to_o auto_fw-la into_o one_o place_n he_o give_v the_o like_a answer_n to_o that_o which_o be_v refute_v before_o touch_v the_o word_n 1._o cor._n 11._o 18._o 20._o viz._n that_o the_o faubsull_n in_o london_n may_v be_v in_o like_a manner_n exhort_v though_o they_o be_v divide_v into_o many_o congregation_n to_o come_v ofc_a together_o into_o one_o place_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v so_o write_v will_v be_v think_v to_o speak_v very_o iproper_o &_o obscure_o see_v it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v all_o meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n for_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n as_o for_o word_n polupletheia_fw-la which_o ignatiu_fw-la use_v as_o the_o d._n imagine_v of_o purpose_n to_o note_n that_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o many_o multitude_n or_o congregation_n it_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a conjecture_n unworthy_a to_o come_v from_o the_o doctor_n for_o popupletheia_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o polu_fw-la plethos_fw-la a_o great_a multitude_n and_o therefore_o argue_v not_o many_o congregation_n but_o rather_o one_o great_a assembly_n but_o go_v we_o forwards_o whereas_o ignatius_n call_v the_o church_n at_o antioch_n sunagogen_fw-mi a_o synagogue_n which_o proper_o note_v one_o congregation_n as_o rich_a as_o he_o be_v he_o have_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o give_v we_o but_o that_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o same_o signification_n with_o ecclesia_fw-la which_o argue_v his_o poverty_n in_o asmuch_o as_o he_o do_v therein_o again_o but_o beg_v the_o question_n yea_o but_o he_o have_v another_o shift_n wherein_o he_o much_o glori_v viz._n that_o ignatius_n entitle_v himself_o the_o bishop_n of_o syria_n epist_n ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la &_o rom._n &_o as_o if_o he_o have_v strike_v it_o dead_a will_v his_o adversary_n to_o tell_v he_o what_o manner_n of_o parish_n syrsa_n be_v and_o desire_v that_o may_v hear_v also_o what_o he_o can_v object_v against_o the_o two_o epistle_n and_o so_o give_v
by_o they_o ergo_fw-la none_n other_o form_n of_o church-government_n save_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v be_v lawful_a and_o good_a the_o proposition_n in_o both_o these_o argument_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o it_o be_v justify_v by_o these_o apostolical_a precept_n 1._o thes_n 5._o 21._o phil._n 4._o 8._o &_o 3_o joh._n 11._o which_v allow_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o reteyn_a any_o good_a thing_n and_o deny_v they_o the_o use_n of_o nothing_o but_o what_o be_v evil_a the_o former_a assumption_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o doctor_n allowance_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n when_o he_o affirm_v it_o serm_n pag._n 95._o &_o 97._o to_o be_v good_a as_o silver_n and_o next_o to_o the_o best_a though_o he_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o the_o late_a assumption_n be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o answer_n before_o set_v down_o wherefore_o he_o can_v with_o any_o equity_n withdraw_v his_o assent_n from_o any_o of_o the_o conclusion_n of_o these_o argument_n how_o soever_o the_o former_a conclusion_n be_v contradictory_n to_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o late_a and_o the_o late_a conclusion_n direct_o contradict_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o former_a argument_n thus_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o while_o the_o doctor_n labour_v to_o doctor_n a_o double_a contradiction_n in_o the_o doctor_n wind_v out_o of_o one_o contradiction_n he_o stick_v fast_o ensnare_v in_o two_o for_o fail_v neither_o let_v he_o think_v here_o to_o evade_v as_o before_o by_o say_v that_o he_o affirm_v not_o simple_a the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n to_o be_v good_a but_o only_o then_o when_o the_o episcopal_a government_n can_v be_v have_v for_o mr._n doctor_n be_v simple_a if_o he_o can_v persuade_v himself_o that_o so_o slight_a a_o answer_n may_v free_v the_o reform_a church_n that_o want_v bishop_n from_o the_o obloquy_n of_o cavil_a papist_n which_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v his_o charitable_a intent_n in_o plead_v so_o as_o he_o do_v for_o they_o and_o their_o discipline_n and_o since_o silver_n be_v simple_o good_a and_o at_o all_o time_n good_a though_o inferior_a in_o goodness_n to_o gold_n he_o deal_v deceitful_o &_o not_o simple_o or_o sincere_o with_o his_o reader_n in_o compare_v these_o 2_o kind_n of_o government_n for_o their_o goodness_n unto_o silver_n and_o gold_n if_o he_o mean_v not_o to_o allow_v the_o presbyterian_a government_n any_o other_o or_o large_a goodness_n then_o for_o those_o time_n or_o place_n where_o the_o episcopal_a regiment_n can_v be_v have_v but_o to_o look_v back_o once_o again_o to_o the_o doctor_n answer_n before_o set_v down_o what_o if_o i_o shall_v contradict_v his_o assumption_n and_o make_v use_n of_o his_o proposition_n to_o cut_v in_o sunder_o the_o windepipe_n of_o his_o conclusion_n in_o this_o manner_n '_o where_o that_o government_n which_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v can_v be_v have_v there_o some_o other_o government_n may_v be_v admit_v but_o while_o the_o apostle_n live_v in_o some_o church_n that_o government_n which_o they_o ordain_v can_v not_o be_v have_v ergo_fw-la while_o they_o live_v in_o some_o church_n a_o other_o form_n of_o government_n may_v be_v admit_v the_o proposition_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o will_v acknowledge_v for_o his_o own_o th'assumption_n be_v fit_v indeed_o to_o contradict_v he_o in_o the_o sense_n that_o he_o embrace_v understanding_n by_o the_o government_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o government_n by_o bishop_n so_o that_o whereas_o he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v have_v while_o the_o apostle_n live_v i_o on_o the_o contratie_n affirm_v that_o in_o some_o church_n at_o that_o time_n it_o can_v not_o be_v have_v and_o this_o i_o suppose_v will_v be_v make_v good_a by_o his_o own_o word_n elsewhere_o serm_n p._n 69._o himself_o the_o d._n contradict_v himself_o def._n lib._n 4._o pag._n 62._o when_o he_o allege_v the_o want_n of_o sit_v choice_n for_o one_o reason_n why_o all_o other_o church_n beside_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n want_v bishop_n for_o many_o year_n in_o the_o life_n time_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o how_o can_v bishop_n be_v have_v to_o govern_v every_o church_n when_o there_o be_v not_o sit_v choice_n of_o person_n fit_a for_o that_o function_n the_o same_o reason_n be_v more_o plain_o deliver_v by_o other_o that_o plead_v the_o same_o cause_n bishop_n barloe_n serm_n on_o acts._n 20._o 28._o fol._n 6._o say_v that_o after_o the_o conversion_n of_o many_o people_n even_o in_o settle_a church_n the_o apostle_n haste_v not_o to_o place_v a_o bishop_n because_o a_o presbyter_n fu_fw-la to_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n be_v hardly_o find_v which_o the_o doctor_n also_o acknowledge_v serm_n pag._n 54._o where_o he_o say_v if_o a_o worthy_a minister_n be_v among_o man_n as_o one_o of_o a_o 1000_o as_o elihu_n spukith_n job._n 33._o 23_o undoubted_o a_o worthy_a bishop_n be_v as_o one_o of_o a_o million_o very_o hardly_o therefore_o will_v he_o escape_v the_o briar_n of_o another_o palpable_a contradiction_n and_o it_o will_v be_v no_o less_o hard_a to_o avoid_v the_o stroke_n of_o the_o conclusion_n which_o if_o he_o can_v turn_v aside_o then_o his_o proposition_n now_o in_o question_n will_v lie_v in_o the_o dust_n overthrow_v not_o by_o any_o of_o our_o weapon_n but_o by_o the_o turn_v of_o those_o upon_o he_o which_o he_o put_v into_o our_o hand_n as_o for_o the_o argument_n which_o he_o add_v to_o put_v new_a life_n and_o strength_n into_o his_o proposition_n though_o just_a exception_n may_v be_v take_v against_o they_o for_o there_o be_v odds_n betwixt_o the_o use_n of_o government_n not_o institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o some_o church_n and_o the_o retain_v of_o it_o in_o all_o church_n or_o the_o alter_n of_o that_o government_n which_o they_o have_v once_o establish_v yet_o will_v i_o not_o prosecure_v such_o advantage_n see_v we_o be_v no_o less_o persuade_v than_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o manifest_a truth_n in_o it_o the_o assumption_n follow_v which_o have_v two_o part_n the_o one_o that_o 38-44_a sect._n 3._o add_v sect_n 2._o etc._n etc._n p_o 38-44_a the_o government_n by_o bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v be_v use_v even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o contradict_v by_o they_o both_o pa●ts_n he_o indeavore_v to_o prove_v first_o by_o scripture_n &_o then_o by_o other_o evidence_n his_o scripture_n proof_n for_o the_o former_a be_v nothing_o else_o then_o a_o naked_a repetition_n of_o the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n scz_n that_o the_o 7._o angel_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the._n 7._o church_n and_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n like_a to_o we_o which_o as_o he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v for_o i_o may_v as_o confident_o avouch_v we_o have_v disprove_v but_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o late_a beside_o the._n 7._o angel_n approve_v by_o saint_n john_n or_o rather_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n he_o allege_v section_n 6._o epaphroditus_n the_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o philippian_n commend_v by_o saint_n paul_n as_o he_o funergos_fw-la kai_fw-la sustratiote_n copartner_n both_o in_o his_o function_n &_o affliction_n &_o the_o philippian_n command_v to_o have_v in_o honour_n such_o phil._n 2._o 25._o 29._o also_o jame_v the_o just_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n approve_v of_o all_o acts._n 15._o &_o 21._o gal._n 1._o 19_o archippus_n the_o bishop_n of_o colossa_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o function_n approve_v of_o paul_n colos_n 4._o 17._o and_o antipas_n who_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o pergamus_n commend_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n apoc._n 2._o 13._o his_o argument_n stand_v thus_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n epaphroditus_n be_v the_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o philippian_n james_n the_o just_a the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la archippus_n the_o bishop_n of_o colossa_n and_o antipas_n the_o bishop_n of_o pergamus_n but_o epaphroditus_n be_v commend_v of_o saine_fw-la paulas_n his_o copartner_n infunction_n and_o affliction_n james_n the_o just_a general_o approve_v archippus_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o function_n approve_v by_o saint_n paul_n and_o antipas_n commend_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ergo_fw-la the_o function_n and_o government_n of_o bishop_n be_v approve_v and_o not_o contradict_v by_o the_o apostle_n here_o the_o proposition_n if_o understand_v of_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v altogether_o false_a and_o the_o d._n do_v but_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o take_v for_o grant_v what_o he_o shall_v have_v beg_v the_o doct._n beg_v prove_v if_o he_o can_v but_o if_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o such_o bishop_n as_o the_o scripture_n testify_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n see_v they_o be_v no_o lordly_a governor_n but_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n in_o another_o function_n either_o high_a as_o be_v james_n the_o apostle_n or_o inferior_a as_o pastor_n of_o one_o
single_a out_o a_o other_o if_o the_o chief_a care_n of_o that_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o oversight_n of_o all_o bishop_n or_o minister_n that_o there_o labour_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o stand_v right_a and_o singular_a prerogative_n of_o epaphroditus_n and_o till_o the_o doctor_n have_v yield_v some_o strong_a probability_n for_o his_o assertion_n then_o be_v yet_o see_v i_o nothing_o doubt_v but_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n will_v see_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o from_o the_o text_n itself_o we_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o deny_v than_o he_o have_v to_o give_v to_o epaphroditus_n the_o singular_a superiority_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o philippi_n second_o concern_v those_o brethren_n that_o be_v send_v with_o titus_n to_o the_o corinthian_n since_o the_o principal_a end_n of_o their_o embassage_n be_v to_o stir_v up_o those_o of_o corinthe_n to_o make_v ready_a their_o benevolence_n for_o the_o poor_a saint_n at_o lerusalem_fw-la 2._o cor._n 8._o 6._o 24._o &_o 9_o 3._o 5._o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n will_v be_v the_o author_n or_o approver_n of_o apply_v in_o this_o service_n any_o that_o be_v affix_v as_o bishop_n to_o the_o selted_a charge_n of_o particular_a church_n especial_o see_v there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n store_n of_o other_o that_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n in_o his_o traveile_n and_o may_v better_o be_v spare_v as_o have_v no_o settle_v employment_n in_o any_o one_o place_n moreover_o it_o may_v be_v probable_o if_o not_o necessary_o gather_v from_o the_o apostle_n description_n of_o those_o man_n that_o they_o be_v evangelistes_n rather_o than_o bishop_n of_o the_o one_o he_o say_v 2._o cor._n 8._o 18._o 19_o his_o praise_n be_v in_o the_o gospel_n throughout_o all_o the_o church_n and_o not_o that_o only_o but_o he_o be_v choose_v also_o of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v suntcdemos_a bemoon_n our_o fellow-traveile_a or_o companion_n in_o our_o journey_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o the_o other_o vers_n 22._o we_o have_v oftentimes_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v diligent_a or_o careful_a in_o many_o thing_n etc._n etc._n but_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n that_o intimate_v any_o band_n whereby_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o selted_a charge_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o have_v the_o singular_a pre-eminence_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n wherefore_o leave_v the_o doctor_n to_o his_o meditation_n upon_o these_o consideration_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o some_o other_o particular_n urge_v by_o he_o to_o justifye_v the_o title_n of_o his_o 3._o chapter_n viz._n that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o ordain_v bishop_n chapt._n 5._o show_v that_o the_o suppose_a bishopric_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n be_v not_o support_v but_o contradict_v by_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o doct._n allege_v and_o mainteyn_v the_o refuter_n reason_n produce_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o receyve_v not_o the_o episcopal_a power_n or_o function_n by_o any_o ordination_n from_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n bandle_v by_o the_o d._n serm_n pag._n 62._o etc._n etc._n def._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 3._o and_o the_o res_fw-la pag._n 131._o 132_o etc._n etc._n the_o doct._n 3._o argument_n be_v thus_o propound_v pag._n 65._o of_o his_o sermon_n 49._o sect._n 1._o ad_fw-la cap._n 3._o sect_n 1._o pag._n 48._o 49._o the_o apostle_n themselves_o ordain_v bishop_n and_o commit_v the_o churoche_n unto_o they_o therefore_o the_o opiscopall_a function_n be_v without_o question_n of_o apostolical_a institution_n first_o touch_v the_o consequence_n because_o the_o refuter_fw-la say_v it_o be_v too_o never_o a_o neighbour_n to_o the_o prove_v of_o idem_fw-la per_fw-la idim_v venlesse_a by_o ordination_n we_o understand_v the_o depute_v of_o person_n to_o that_o church_n and_o by_o institution_n the_o appoint_v of_o the_o call_n itself_o the_o doct._n think_v he_o do_v he_o wrong_n to_o think_v he_o will_v commit_v so_o gross_a a_o fault_n as_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o the_o same_o see_v he_o can_v not_o but_o discern_v that_o he_o argue_v from_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o person_n to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o function_n but_o have_v not_o the_o refuter_fw-la trow_v you_o reason_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o doctor_n meaning_n do_v he_o not_o serm_n pag._n 92._o take_v both_o these_o assertion_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o viz._n that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o that_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o one_o in_o the_o d._n apprehension_n how_o shall_v the_o direct_a proof_n of_o the_o latter_a be_v a_o direct_a proof_n of_o the_o former_a but_o since_o he_o now_o testify_v that_o he_o argue_v from_o the_o ordination_n to_o the_o institution_n i_o will_v so_o understand_v he_o in_o that_o which_o follow_v i_o can_v but_o commend_v his_o honest_a and_o plain_a deal_n for_o behold_v a_o oversight_n in_o the_o ref_o when_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o acknowledge_v the_o consequence_n to_o be_v good_a he_o himself_o undertake_v to_o lay_v open_a the_o weakness_n of_o it_o and_o confess_v free_o that_o a_o just_a exception_n may_v be_v take_v against_o it_o viz._n that_o though_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v the_o person_n yet_o chir_v institute_v the_o function_n for_o that_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o many_o of_o the_o father_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o cyprian_a who_o lib._n 3._o ep_v 9_o say_v that_o our_o l._n himself_n ordain_v apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bishop_n whereto_o i_o say_v that_o we_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o doct._n that_o teach_v we_o to_o impugn_v his_o own_o argument_n and_o now_o since_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n the_o consequence_n be_v not_o good_a he_o must_v be_v behold_v to_o we_o if_o we_o permit_v it_o to_o pass_v without_o check_n for_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o the_o ordination_n of_o person_n can_v prove_v the_o function_n itself_o to_o be_v institute_v of_o they_o that_o give_v the_o person_n their_o ordination_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o light_o the_o d._n esteem_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o very_a question_n wherein_o he_o rely_v most_o upon_o their_o testimony_n for_o if_o all_o those_o father_n which_o affirm_v the_o bp_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n &_o that_o the_o two_o degree_n of_o bp_n or_o presbyter_n do_v answer_n to_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o 72_o disciple_n &c._n &c._n do_v hold_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v christ_n own_o ordinance_n as_o here_o he_o confess_v and_o if_o they_o that_o thus_o teach_v be_v so_o many_o so_o ancient_a unsuspected_a and_o approve_a that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o the_o call_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n together_o with_o the_o inferior_a degree_n of_o presbyter_n be_v of_o christ_n own_o institution_n as_o he_o conclude_v lib._n 3._o p._n 32._o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o doctor_n have_v the_o forehead_n eo_fw-la deny_v it_o and_o maintain_v so_o stiff_o as_o he_o do_v that_o himself_o the_o doct._n contradict_v himself_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n think_v he_o to_o salve_v this_o difference_n by_o say_v as_o he_o he_o do_v that_o of_o this_o matter_n he_o will_v not_o contend_v when_o as_o yet_o he_o contend_v very_o earnest_o to_o make_v good_a his_o assertion_n yea_o he_o boast_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 24._o that_o he_o have_v with_o such_o evidence_n demonstrate_v the_o call_n of_o bishop_n describe_v in_o his_o sermon_n to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n as_o he_o be_v well_o assure_v his_o refuter_fw-la with_o all_o his_o partaker_n will_v never_o be_v able_a sound_o &_o substantial_o to_o confute_v perhaps_o his_o best_a evidence_n be_v yet_o behind_o for_o hitherto_o we_o have_v see_v nothing_o that_o carry_v any_o such_o weight_n with_o it_o that_o the_o refuter_fw-la shall_v need_v to_o call_v for_o any_o help_n of_o his_o partaker_n to_o remove_v it_o let_v we_o therefore_o attend_v on_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o antecedent_n which_o he_o undertake_v to_o effect_v by_o show_v the_o time_n when_o the_o place_n where_o and_o the_o person_n who_o the_o apostle_n ord_n yn_v bishop_n concern_v the_o time_n the_o doctor_n put_v a_o difference_n between_o 50._o sect._n 2._o add_v sect_n 2._o p3_n 49._o 50._o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o rest_n for_o there_o because_o short_o after_o christ_n passion_n a_o great_a number_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o because_o it_o be_v the_o mother-church_n unto_o which_o the_o christian_n from_o all_o part_n be_v afterward_o to_o have_v recourse_n the_o apostle_n before_o their_o dispersion_n statim_fw-la post_fw-la passionem_fw-la domini_fw-la ordain_v james_n the_o just_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n
jerome_n and_o to_o make_v he_o the_o more_o gracious_a with_o the_o disciplinarian_o he_o say_v it_o be_v that_o jerome_n on_o who_o only_a authority_n almost_o they_o rely_v in_o this_o cause_n the_o like_a word_n he_o have_v p._n 61_o follow_v and_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 45._o and_o 58_o but_o this_o be_v i_o say_v not_o almost_o but_o altogether_o a_o malicious_a slander_n for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o his_o refuter_fw-la every_o where_o call_v for_o proof_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o other_o have_v do_v before_o he_o &_o that_o his_o testimony_n be_v then_o only_o regard_v of_o they_o when_o he_o have_v the_o scripture_n to_o justify_v that_o he_o affirm_v but_o it_o well_o appear_v by_o his_o cite_n jerome_n so_o oft_o in_o his_o sermon_n 40._o time_n at_o least_o well_o nigh_o twice_o as_o oft_o as_o he_o allege_v any_o other_o that_o he_o rely_v very_o much_o on_o his_o authority_n to_o he_o here_o he_o add_v eusebius_n epiphanius_n &_o some_o other_o who_o testimony_n in_o his_o conceit_n shall_v suffice_v to_o persuade_v for_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o this_o now_o in_o question_n but_o his_o refuters_n exception_n be_v just_a such_o a_o joint_a act_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o ordain_v of_o james_n to_o the_o episcopal_a charge_n of_o jerusalem_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o who_o can_v better_o testify_v it_o than_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n who_o write_v the_o history_n of_o their_o act_n if_o then_o he_o have_v not_o record_v it_o it_o be_v a_o strong_a presumption_n he_o be_v never_o bishop_n there_o the_o doct._n repli_v say_v as_o though_o the_o apostle_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v record_v in_o the_o act_n and_o as_o though_o we_o shall_v deny_v credit_n to_o the_o ancient_a writer_n &_o such_o as_o he_o of_o best_a credit_n report_v with_o one_o consent_n a_o matter_n of_o fact_n not_o register_v in_o the_o act_n as_o for_o the_o antiquity_n and_o credit_n of_o his_o witness_n i_o overpass_v that_o consideration_n to_o sect_n 15._o etc._n etc._n i_o be_o here_o to_o advertise_v the_o reader_n the_o poverty_n of_o the_o doctor_n supply_v here_o bring_v to_o relieve_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o argument_n for_o unless_o he_o can_v make_v sure_a and_o certain_a proof_n of_o this_o among_o other_o part_n of_o his_o induction_n that_o s._n james_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n how_o shall_v he_o justify_v his_o conclusion_n before_o set_v down_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v without_o quaestion_n of_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o how_o shall_v certain_a and_o sure_a proof_n of_o james_n his_o ordination_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v make_v from_o such_o witness_n as_o the_o doctor_n have_v produce_v be_v not_o the_o canonical_a writing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n pen_v partly_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o partly_o by_o evangelist_n which_o be_v their_o companion_n best_o able_a to_o testify_v what_o function_n james_n and_o other_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n do_v bear_v and_o exercise_n in_o the_o church_n that_o enjoy_v their_o presence_n we_o find_v many_o thing_n record_v by_o luke_n concern_v the_o ministry_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n philip_n and_o other_o by_o who_o labour_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v enlarge_v act_n 9_o 15._o 27._o &_o 13._o 2._o 3._o &_o 14._o 14._o &_o 15._o 22._o 31._o &_o 8._o 5._o 40._o &_o 21._o 8._o neither_o be_v the_o scripture_n silent_a touch_v james_n and_o his_o employment_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 1._o 13._o &_o 15._o 13._o &_o 21._o 18._o gal._n 1._o 9_o &_o 2._o 9_o why_o then_o shall_v this_o ordination_n of_o james_n to_o the_o function_n and_o charge_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o that_o church_n be_v whole_o bury_v in_o silence_n if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o joynt-act_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o their_o dispersion_n and_o a_o act_n of_o that_o moment_n wherein_o they_o give_v the_o first_o precedent_n of_o a_o new_a function_n of_o great_a use_n &_o high_a place_n for_o all_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n be_v it_o not_o as_o worthy_a &_o more_o necessary_a to_o be_v record_v than_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o deacon_n office_n act._n 6._o 2._o 6_o have_v we_o not_o cause_v then_o to_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o strong_a presumption_n that_o james_n never_o have_v any_o such_o ordination_n see_v there_o be_v no_o footstep_n of_o it_o in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n and_o see_v the_o doctor_n defence_n be_v so_o slight_a as_o it_o be_v mark_v it_o i_o pray_v first_o he_o ask_v whether_o the_o apostle_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v record_v in_o the_o act_n a_o frivolous_a question_n no_o man_n deny_v that_o as_o christ_n do_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v joh._n 20._o 30._o &_o 21._o 25_o so_o also_o do_v his_o apostle_n but_o will_v he_o argue_v thus_o they_o do_v something_o not_o record_v in_o the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la they_o do_v this_o now_o in_o question_n how_o do_v the_o doct._n forget_v himself_o thus_o to_o open_v so_o wide_a a_o door_n unto_o the_o papist_n to_o bring_v in_o all_o their_o superstition_n under_o the_o name_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n can_v he_o give_v we_o any_o one_o instance_n of_o a_o apostolical_a ordinance_n or_o of_o any_o apostolic_a action_n of_o like_a moment_n and_o necessary_a use_n for_o all_o church_n that_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o their_o writing_n neither_o can_v be_v prove_v otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o story_n &_o and_z writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o this_o may_v serve_v for_o answer_v also_o unto_o his_o second_o question_n whether_o we_o shall_v deny_v credit_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n etc._n etc._n report_v with_o one_o consent_n a_o matter_n of_o fact_n not_o register_v in_o the_o act_n in_o some_o matter_n of_o fact_n credit_n be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o their_o report_n as_o that_o james_n the_o just_o be_v martyr_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o mark_v the_o evangelist_n preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o aleandria_n but_o there_o be_v many_o matter_n of_o fact_n testify_v by_o many_o ancient_n and_o those_o of_o the_o best_a credit_n as_o the_o d._n speak_v which_o notwithstanding_o many_o worthy_a man_n nothing_o inferior_a to_o the_o doctor_n esteem_v worthy_a of_o no_o credit_n i_o will_v instance_n only_o in_o peter_n bishopric_n first_o at_o antioch_n &_o then_o at_o rome_n which_o be_v contend_v for_o not_o only_o by_o papist_n but_o also_o by_o some_o zealous_a defender_n of_o our_o prelacy_n let_v the_o testimony_n be_v well_o weigh_v which_o be_v bring_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o peter_n episcopal_a chair_n in_o both_o church_n rome_n especial_o even_o by_o bishop_n bilson_n perpet_n govern_v pag._n 227._o 262._o and_o 264_o and_o they_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v neither_o in_o number_n nor_o in_o credit_n inferior_a to_o those_o that_o the_o d._n allege_v for_o james_n his_o bishopric_n at_o jerusalem_fw-la yet_o as_o many_o other_o man_n of_o singular_a learning_n &_o piety_n do_v deny_v credit_n to_o their_o report_n so_o the_o doctor_n also_o as_o one_o nothing_o move_v either_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o father_n or_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o great_a mr_n that_o give_v he_o so_o good_a satisfaction_n in_o the_o study_v of_o this_o controversy_n utter_o seclude_v the_o apostle_n peter_n from_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o any_o of_o those_o church_n as_o we_o may_v see_v serm_n pag._n 81._o 82._o and_o in_o the_o 7._o section_n of_o cap._n 3._o def_n if_o the_o doctor_n shall_v say_v he_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v the_o testimony_n 5._o sect._n 5._o of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o one_o and_o to_o deny_v credit_n unto_o they_o in_o the_o other_o know_v he_o that_o we_o have_v reason_n also_o to_o withdraw_v approbation_n from_o this_o which_o he_o allow_v but_o first_o listen_v we_o to_o the_o reason_n that_o sway_v he_o in_o this_o question_n although_o say_v he_o the_o act_n of_o make_v james_n bishop_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o the_o act_n yet_o the_o story_n so_o speak_v of_o his_o continuance_n at_o jerusalem_n acts._n 15._o &_o 21._o of_o his_o assistance_n of_o presbyter_n &_o of_o his_o presidencie_n in_o that_o council_n where_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v present_a that_o it_o may_v appear_v their_o testimony_n be_v true_a &_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n who_o have_v report_v he_o to_o be_v bishop_n there_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n afterward_o sect_n 9_o pag._n 61_o he_o say_v that_o the_o same_o scripture_n together_o with_o gal._n 1._o &_o 2._o do_v show_n james_n his_o continuance_n as_o jerusalem_fw-la as_o the_o superintendent_n of_o that_o church_n not_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o for_o
the_o space_n of_o 30._o year_n even_o to_o his_o death_n and_o also_o plain_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n thus_o he_o say_v and_o thus_o it_o seem_v his_o meaning_n be_v to_o argue_v the_o scripture_n which_o show_v that_o james_n continue_v at_o jerusalem_n as_o the_o superintendent_n of_o that_o church_n from_o christ_n passion_n to_o his_o own_o death_n do_v also_o plain_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v the_o bishop_n thereof_o but_o his_o continuance_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o so_o long_a space_n as_o superintendent_n of_o that_o church_n be_v testify_v act._n 15._o &_o 21._o &_o gal._n 1._o therefore_o the_o same_o scripture_n do_v plain_o prove_v that_o james_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la and_o consequent_o their_o testimony_n be_v true_a &_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n who_o have_v report_v he_o to_o be_v bishop_n there_o a_o superintendent_n and_o a_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o natural_a construction_n of_o the_o word_n in_o their_o original_n be_v all_o one_o &_o both_o of_o they_o in_o a_o general_a signification_n may_v very_o well_o be_v apply_v to_o that_o presidencie_n &_o oversight_n which_o every_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n have_v in_o every_o church_n for_o the_o time_n of_o their_o abode_n there_o for_o who_o have_v the_o superintendency_n or_o government_n or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o episcopal_a charge_n of_o the_o church_n at_o corinthe_n for_o that_o space_n of_o a_o year_n &_o six_o month_n which_o paul_n spend_v there_o in_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n among_o they_o or_o of_o the_o church_n at_o ephesus_n during_o the_o space_n of_o 3._o year_n wherein_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o warn_v every_o one_o night_n and_o day_n and_o to_o teach_v they_o both_o public_o and_o from_o house_n to_o house_n acts._n 18._o 8._o 11._o and_o 20._o 17._o 20._o 31._o but_o as_o this_o superintendencie_n prove_v not_o s._n paul_n to_o have_v be_v the_o bishop_n either_o of_o corinthe_n or_o ephesus_n in_o the_o function_n of_o a_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_a bishop_n so_o neither_o do_v the_o like_a superintendencie_n in_o james_n at_o jerusalem_n argue_v he_o to_o have_v the_o function_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o archbishop_n although_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o he_o continue_v in_o such_o a_o superintendencie_n there_o for_o that_o who_o space_n of_o year_n before_o mention_v for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o continuance_n of_o 3._o or_o 30._o year_n that_o distinguish_v the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n from_o a_o apostle_n but_o a_o ordination_n and_o assignment_n to_o the_o perpetual_a charge_n of_o one_o particular_a church_n the_o proposition_n therefore_o of_o the_o doctor_n argument_n be_v not_o true_a unless_o he_o limit_v the_o superintendencie_n whereof_o he_o speak_v unto_o this_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o james_n be_v the_o superintendent_n of_o that_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o special_a function_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o then_o his_o assumption_n be_v false_a not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o such_o a_o episcopal_a superintendencie_n but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o length_n of_o time_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o he_o therein_o for_o the_o scripture_n allege_v by_o he_o do_v not_o prove_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o 60._o sect._n 6._o add_v sect_n 6._o p._n 56_o &_o sect_n 8._o pag._n 60._o for_o to_o weigh_v the_o place_n first_o severally_z &_o then_o joint_o what_o superintendencie_n other_o then_o apostolical_a can_v the_o doctor_n discern_v in_o galath_n 1_o s._n paul_n there_o testify_v that_o immediate_o upon_o his_o conversion_n he_o go_v not_o up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o they_o that_o be_v apostle_n before_o he_o but_o 3._o year_n after_o he_o go_v up_o thither_o to_o see_v peter_n and_o find_v there_o no_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n save_v james_n the_o l._n brother_n vers_fw-la 17._o 18._o 19_o behold_v here_o a_o manifest_a approbation_n of_o his_o apostolical_a function_n for_o he_o equal_o honour_v he_o and_o peter_n with_o the_o name_n of_o apostle_n but_o of_o any_o episcopal_a superintendencie_n wherein_o he_o shall_v differ_v from_o peter_n there_o be_v altum_fw-la silentium_fw-la no_o inkling_n at_o all_o nay_o rather_o of_o the_o two_o there_o reason_v be_v more_o probable_a which_o give_v pre-eminence_n unto_o peter_n because_o paul_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n of_o purpose_n to_o visit_v not_o james_n but_o peter_n and_o abode_n with_o he_o 15._o day_n 2._o as_o for_o gal._n 2._o he_o that_o peruse_v the_o text_n may_v very_o well_o think_v the_o doct._n have_v need_v to_o have_v skill_n in_o alchymistrie_n as_o well_o as_o in_o divinity_n if_o he_o undertake_v from_o thence_o to_o extract_v for_o s._n james_n a_o episcopal_a superintendencie_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o behold_v how_o he_o pag._n 56._o attempt_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n james_n peter_n and_o john_n give_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o fellowship_n to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n that_o themselves_o will_v be_v for_o the_o circumcision_n gal._n 2._o 9_o and_o for_o asmuch_o as_o peter_n &_o john_n traveil_v to_o other_o part_n james_n alwaise_v abide_v at_o jerusalem●_n it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o the_o church_n of_o jury_n be_v peculiar_o assign_v unto_o he_o but_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o james_n do_v always_o abide_v at_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o rest_n traveyl_v abroad_o do_v it_o appear_v in_o gal._n 2._o that_o any_o such_o agreement_n be_v make_v between_o he_o and_o they_o no_o he_o say_v it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o so_o it_o be_v but_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n that_o james_n be_v forbid_v to_o go_v out_o of_o jerusalem_n see_v the_o rest_n be_v not_o debar_v from_o return_v thither_o i_o but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o the_o church_n of_o jury_n be_v peculiar_o assign_v to_o he_o see_v peter_n &_o john_n traveil_v into_o other_o part_n by_o the_o church_n of_o jury_n he_o mean_v as_o i_o suppose_v all_o the_o church_n in_o judea_n mention_v gal._n 1._o 22._o &_o 1_o thess_n 2._o 14._o and_o perhaps_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v in_o galilee_n &_o samaria_n acts._n 9_o 31._o for_o who_o fit_a than_o he_o to_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o these_o church_n also_o now_o i_o grant_v that_o in_o their_o absence_n and_o during_o his_o abode_n in_o those_o coast_n it_o be_v probable_a he_o undertake_v the_o care_n of_o those_o church_n like_v as_o peter_n have_v the_o chief_a oversight_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v scatter_v throughout_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n etc._n etc._n 1._o pet._n 1._o 1._o during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o stay_n in_o those_o party_n but_o as_o peter_n remein_v still_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o circumcision_n &_o become_v not_o proper_o their_o bishop_n which_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v pag._n 57_o &_o 97._o so_o neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o james_n have_v any_o episcopal_a but_o rather_o only_a a_o apostolical_a superintendencie_n over_o the_o church_n of_o jury_n but_o pass_v we_o forwards_o the_o doctor_n add_v it_o be_v not_o for_o nothing_o that_o both_o in_o acts._n 15._o he_o be_v note_v as_o precedent_n or_o chief_a in_o that_o council_n and_o in_o gal._n 2._o 9_o paul_n speak_v of_o such_o apostle_n as_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n he_o give_v the_o precedence_n to_o james_n before_o peter_n and_o john_n i_o grant_v that_o james_n be_v precedent_n in_o that_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o priority_n in_o nomination_n before_o peter_n and_o john_n gal._n 2._o 9_o neither_o be_v these_o thing_n record_v for_o nothing_o but_o for_o our_o learning_n aswell_o as_o all_o other_o part_n of_o holy_a writ_n rom._n 15._o 4._o but_o will_v the_o doct._n be_v please_v to_o discover_v unto_o we_o the_o depth_n of_o that_o learning_n which_o he_o find_v to_o lie_v hide_v in_o these_o place_n yea_o he_o have_v do_v it_o serm_n pag._n 68_o and_o def._n pag._n 60._o next_o follow_v in_o the_o former_a he_o say_v it_o appear_v acts._n 15._o that_o james_n after_o his_o election_n to_o the_o bishopric_n be_v superior_a though_o not_o in_o degree_n yet_o in_o order_n unto_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o &_o while_o they_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o the_o late_a he_o quote_v acts._n 15._o &_o gal._n 2._o to_o show_v that_o because_o he_o be_v set_v over_o the_o mother-church_n of_o christendom_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n of_o that_o people_n which_o have_v sundry_a prerogative_n above_o all_o other_o nation_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o place_n he_o have_v precedence_n before_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o which_o word_n there_o be_v some_o clear_a truth_n which_o must_v be_v divide_v from_o other_o more_o doubtful_a point_n of_o the_o former_a sort_n not_o to_o mention_v again_o the_o presidence_n &_o priority_n before_o acknowledge_v in_o s._n
occasion_n be_v offer_v wherever_o he_o become_v but_o the_o episcopal_a power_n in_o the_o doctor_n understanding_n form_n pag._n 32._o 69._o 73._o be_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n ergo_fw-la the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o james_n by_o the_o apostle_n now_o what_o be_v the_o d._n answer_n i_o answer_v say_v he_o by_o distinction_n the_o power_n of_o order_n if_o i_o may_v so_o term_v it_o james_n have_v before_o as_o those_o who_o be_v bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la but_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v design_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o edge_n of_o this_o answer_n be_v bend_v direct_o against_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o refuter_n objection_n and_o against_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o prosyllogism_n add_v for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o only_o whereas_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v the_o power_n both_o of_o ordination_n &_o of_o jurisdiction_n to_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o james_n by_o christ_n when_o he_o make_v he_o a_o apostle_n &_o therefore_o neither_o of_o they_o give_v he_o by_o his_o fellow-apostle_n the_o do_v tell_v we_o that_o jame_v receive_v from_o christ_n only_o the_o power_n of_o order_n but_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o when_o they_o design_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o in_o stead_n of_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n into_o which_o the_o refuter_fw-la distribute_v all_o episcopal_a power_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o doctor_n own_o direction_n as_o be_v before_o show_v he_o now_o yield_v we_o a_o new_a distribution_n of_o episcopal_a poewr_n into_o power_n of_o order_n and_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n distribution_n the_o d._n be_v drive_v to_o make_v new_a distribution_n and_o yet_o utter_o silence_v both_o the_o difference_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o change_n which_o a_o man_n that_o love_v plain_a deal_n shall_v not_o have_v do_v especial_o when_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o very_a shallow_a conceit_n as_o he_o say_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 103._o for_o though_o they_o may_v from_o henceforth_o rest_v persuade_v that_o he_o confound_v not_o the_o power_n of_o order_n in_o bishop_n with_o their_o power_n of_o ordination_n because_o he_o make_v the_o late_a but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o former_a lib._n 3._o p._n 102._o 105._o yet_o they_o may_v stand_v in_o doubt_n whether_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o now_o he_o oppose_v to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o before_o he_o distinguish_v from_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n if_o the_o same_o then_o his_o answer_n be_v both_o false_a and_o absurd_a yea_o contradict_v by_o himself_o for_o when_o he_o reduce_v all_o episcopal_a power_n wherein_o they_o excel_v presbyter_n unto_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n he_o carry_v the_o late_a unto_o public_a etc._n the_o doct._n contradict_v himself_o and_o deal_v absurd_o or_o delude_v his_o reader_n etc._n etc._n government_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la with_o authority_n over_o presbyter_n and_o people_n both_o to_o guide_v and_o direct_v they_o as_o their_o ruler_n and_o to_o censure_v and_o correct_v they_o as_o their_o judge_n serm_n gag_n 45-51_a now_o it_o jame_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o this_o power_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostleship_n how_o shall_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o make_v bishop_n as_o the_o doctor_n avouch_v sect_n 7._o pag._n 58._o have_v the_o same_o authority_n in_o this_o behalf_n wheresoever_o they_o come_v that_o james_n have_v at_o jerusalem_n or_o timothe_n at_o ephesus_n as_o the_o doctor_n confess_v cap._n 4._o pag._n 96._o again_o how_o often_o do_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n aswell_o as_o that_o other_o of_o ordination_n be_v derive_v unto_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v their_o successor_n in_o this_o power_n of_o government_n serm_v pag._n 45._o 70._o and_o in_o this_o defence_n passim_fw-la yea_o he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n each_o of_o they_o retain_v this_o power_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n while_o they_o continue_v near_o unto_o or_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v long_o from_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v plant_v and_o for_o proof_n thereof_o cit_v 2._o thes_n 3._o 14._o &_o 1_o cor._n 5._o serm_n pag._n 65._o def._n pag._n 63._o i_o ask_v therefore_o whence_o they_o have_v this_o power_n which_o they_o retain_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n for_o a_o time_n &_o commit_v to_o other_o when_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o themselves_o he_o can_v say_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o any_o such_o assignment_n to_o some_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n as_o james_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v to_o jerusalem_fw-la see_v he_o deni_v they_o to_o be_v properly_z bishop_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o governm_fw-la t_o or_o jurisdiction_n be_v enclose_v in_o that_o apostolical_a commission_n which_o they_o have_v from_o christ_n mat._n 18._o 18._o and_o 28._o 19_o joh._n 20._o 23._o and_o 21._o 15._o 16._o be_v it_o not_o both_o false_a and_o absurd_a to_o deny_v that_o this_o power_n be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o james_n when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n now_o if_o to_o avoid_v these_o inconvenience_n he_o shall_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o take_v jurisdiction_n in_o a_o other_o sense_n his_o market_n be_v utter_o mar_v in_o asmuch_o as_o he_o do_v only_o in_o show_n to_o delude_v his_o reader_n impugn_v that_o which_o his_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v whereas_o in_o deed_n he_o justify_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a argument_n for_o if_o both_o those_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n wherein_o the_o d._n place_v the_o power_n and_o superiority_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v give_v unto_o james_n by_o christ_n and_o neither_o of_o they_o by_o his_o f●llowe_n apostle_n they_o he_o receive_v not_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bp._n by_o their_o ordination_n have_v thus_o free_v the_o refuter_n objection_n from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o answer_n sect._n 14._o show_v 6._o error_n in_o the_o d._n answer_n doctor_n answer_n the_o reader_n be_v to_o be_v advertise_v of_o these_o error_n which_o mr_n doctor_n have_v broach_v therein_o 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n receive_v from_o christ_n the_o power_n of_o order_n only_o and_o not_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n 2._o and_o therefore_o by_o their_o apostleship_n be_v but_o as_o bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la for_o since_o the_o d._n give_v unto_o james_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o apostleship_n receive_v from_o christ_n none_o other_o power_n than_o that_o of_o order_n which_o make_v he_o as_o a_o bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la he_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v also_o as_o bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la and_o not_o endue_v by_o christ_n with_o that_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n distinguish_v by_o he_o from_o the_o power_n of_o order_n unless_o to_o avoid_v these_o rock_n he_o will_v fall_v into_o the_o gulf_n of_o a_o other_o error_n no_o less_o absurd_a viz._n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o all_o equal_a in_o power_n by_o their_o apostolical_a function_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o he_o say_v that_o james_n have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n give_v he_o by_o his_o fellowe-apostle_n when_o they_o design_v he_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n it_o will_v follow_v from_o hence_o 3._o that_o the_o apostle_n give_v he_o a_o power_n which_o themselves_o have_v not_o and_o 4._o that_o those_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o make_v bishop_n as_o james_n be_v never_o have_v that_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o he_o enjoy_v yea_o 5._o the_o episcopal_a charge_n which_o james_n have_v at_o jerusalem_n give_v he_o a_o pre-eminence_n above_o his_o fellow-apostle_n not_o only_o in_o superiority_n of_o order_n while_o they_o remain_v there_o as_o before_o he_o affirm_v but_o also_o in_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n 6._o and_o consequent_o all_o other_o bishop_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o the_o like_a power_n superior_a to_o the_o very_a apostle_n as_o many_o as_o be_v not_o proper_o bishop_n these_o be_v the_o doctor_n absurdity_n and_o the_o very_a name_n of_o they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o abate_v the_o edge_n and_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o his_o answer_n yea_o under_o correction_n be_v it_o speak_v as_o it_o may_v well_o make_v he_o blush_v at_o the_o read_n of_o his_o brag_n preface_n pag._n 17._o where_o he_o say_v in_o his_o conscience_n he_o be_v persuade_v that_o no_o one_o of_o his_o proof_n in_o all_o his_o sermon_n be_v disprove_v nor_o he_o convince_v of_o any_o one_o vintruth_n throughout_o the_o body_n thereof_o so_o it_o may_v be_v a_o good_a motive_n to_o he_o no_o long_o to_o strike_v against_o the_o
too_o weak_a to_o uphold_v it_o so_o it_o will_v soon_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o very_a slight_a answer_n to_o the_o refuter_n objection_n who_o say_v that_o if_o jame_v his_o whole_a authority_n be_v confine_v to_o jerusalem_fw-la it_o have_v be_v in_o a_o sort_n to_o clip_v his_o wing_n &_o so_o a_o abasement_n and_o not_o a_o preferment_n to_o he_o for_o what_o be_v it_o it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o a_o clip_v of_o his_o wing_n more_o than_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o by_o mutual_a consent_n every_o man_n province_n as_o it_o be_v or_o circuit_n and_o charge_n be_v assign_v to_o he_o as_o if_o the_o doct._n fault_n be_v not_o increase_v rather_o then_o lessen_v to_o clip_v the_o wing_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o company_n &_o to_o testify_v one_o untruthby_o another_o for_o as_o he_o can_v prove_v so_o i_o have_v disprove_v cap._n 5._o sect_n 11._o his_o fancy_n of_o divide_v to_o every_o apostle_n his_o several_a province_n or_o circuit_n by_o mutual_a consent_n and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o partition_n of_o province_n among_o they_o why_o shall_v he_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v proper_o bishop_n every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o his_o circuit_n or_o how_o can_v he_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o great_a abatement_n of_o their_o authority_n and_o so_o a_o clip_n of_o their_o wing_n to_o be_v confine_v within_o one_o province_n or_o to_o one_o nation_n when_o as_o by_o their_o apostolical_a function_n they_o have_v authority_n to_o preach_v and_o to_o execute_v all_o ministerial_a duty_n in_o every_o place_n and_o country_n wheresoever_o they_o shall_v come_v ye●_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n james_n his_o share_n must_v needs_o be_v by_o far_o the_o least_o if_o he_o be_v confine_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o one_o only_a church_n yea_o this_o be_v in_o deed_n to_o make_v he_o no_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o a_o titular_a apostle_n only_o for_o as_o he_o say_v of_o titular_a bishop_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 130._o that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o have_v the_o bare_a name_n but_o not_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o bishop_n so_o he_o must_v also_o affirm_v of_o james_n that_o he_o be_v but_o a_o titular_a apostle_n see_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o apostle_n which_o stand_v in_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n as_o occasion_n shall_v be_v offer_v and_o in_o plant_v church_n where_o none_o be_v etc._n etc._n be_v deny_v unto_o james_n if_o his_o whole_a authority_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o episcopal_a oversight_n of_o that_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v already_o found_v to_o his_o hand_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n to_o meletius_n and_o other_o which_o return_v from_o schism_n or_o haeresy_n to_o the_o church_n to_o debar_v they_o from_o their_o episcopal_a authority_n though_o they_o be_v allow_v the_o name_n or_o title_n of_o bishop_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o enlargement_n of_o james_n his_o honour_n to_o have_v his_o whole_a authority_n confine_v to_o one_o church_n as_o other_o bishop_n although_o he_o retain_v the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o a_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o next_o point_n viz._n james_n his_o continuance_n at_o jerusalem_n 134._o sect._n 9_o add_v sect_n 9_o pag_n 62._o doct._n &_o refuter_fw-la pag._n 134._o for_o o_o year_n even_o till_o his_o die_a day_n to_o omit_v what_o be_v already_o say_v cap._n 5._o sect_n 10._o &_o 25._o for_o the_o contrary_a we_o be_v now_o to_o examine_v whether_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o stay_n there_o be_v as_o the_o doctor_n suppose_v only_o to_o govern_v that_o church_n in_o the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o reason_n of_o his_o continuance_n there_o say_v the_o refuter_fw-la be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o be_v convert_v which_o may_v have_v be_v otherwise_o perform_v as_o the_o convert_n of_o multitude_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o of_o other_o nation_n that_o usual_o flock_v thither_o which_o be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o apostolical_a function_n whereunto_o the_o doctor_n repli_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o say_v the_o church_n may_v have_v be_v otherwise_o govern_v unless_o he_o can_v show_v that_o it_o be_v otherwise_o govern_v but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o if_o he_o grant_v it_o may_v have_v be_v otherwise_o govern_v without_o a_o apostle_n residence_n there_o then_o he_o shall_v show_v himself_o very_o void_a of_o reason_n to_o make_v the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n either_o the_o only_a or_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o so_o long_o remain_v in_o that_o place_n and_o unless_o he_o can_v assign_v some_o other_o cause_n of_o more_o weight_n then_o that_o the_o refuter_fw-la mention_v it_o be_v but_o a_o wrangle_a part_n in_o he_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o refute_v his_o refuters_n assertion_n in_o this_o case_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n to_o urge_v he_o to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v otherwise_o govern_v unless_o he_o have_v deny_v that_o the_o chief_a stroke_n of_o the_o government_n rest_v in_o his_o hand_n for_o the_o time_n of_o his_o abode_n there_o after_o the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n into_o other_o part_n and_o where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o church_n have_v a_o pastor_n assign_v to_o they_o by_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n either_o he_o do_v but_o trifle_n or_o which_o be_v worse_o dissemble_v his_o own_o knowledge_n for_o if_o by_o a_o pastor_n he_o mean_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o doubt_v of_o but_o flat_o deny_v that_o any_o such_o pastor_n be_v assign_v to_o they_o by_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o he_o take_v the_o word_n at_o large_a for_o every_o or_o any_o one_o that_o feed_v whether_o as_o peter_n john_n 21._o 15._o in_o the_o function_n of_o a_o apostle_n or_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o ordinary_a call_n of_o presbyter_n act._n 20._o 28._o then_o he_o show_v himself_o a_o mere_a trifler_n since_o it_o nothing_o advantage_v his_o cause_n to_o grant_v that_o james_n be_v in_o this_o large_a construction_n of_o the_o word_n their_o pastor_n by_o a_o temporary_a assignment_n and_o that_o beside_o he_o they_o have_v other_o pastor_n even_o so_o many_o as_o there_o be_v presbyter_n in_o that_o church_n but_o when_o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o the_o cause_n and_o end_n beg_v the_o doct._n beg_v of_o his_o stay_n there_o 30._o year_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o stay_n of_o simon_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o successor_n till_o their_o death_n he_o do_v too_o apparent_o beg_v the_o question_n for_o the_o cause_n which_o the_o refuter_fw-la propound_v and_o the_o doctor_n contradict_v not_o cease_v before_o simons_n election_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o his_o election_n be_v not_o till_o jerusalem_n be_v destroy_v by_o titus_n as_o eusebius_n affirm_v lib._n 3._o ca._n 10._o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o recourse_n either_o of_o jew_n or_o of_o other_o nation_n unto_o the_o temple_n there_o in_o simons_n time_n or_o his_o successor_n as_o be_v all_o the_o day_n of_o james._n and_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o jew_n rejection_n for_o the_o generality_n of_o they_o take_v place_n after_o that_o desolation_n make_v by_o titus_n &_o his_o army_n there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a need_n now_o as_o before_o for_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n there_o to_o reside_v to_o labour_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o other_o that_o usual_o frequent_v that_o place_n there_o remain_v one_o speech_n of_o the_o doctor_n which_o in_o the_o refuters_n 61._o sect._n 10._o add_v sect_n 8._o pag_n 61._o apprehension_n blow_v down_o this_o which_o he_o so_o careful_o labour_v to_o set_v up_o as_o be_v show_v by_o this_o argument_n that_o charge_n say_v the_o doctor_n sermon_n pag._n 68_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o common_a while_o they_o iount_o rule_v the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v afterwards_o commit_v to_o james_n 〈◊〉_d particular_a but_o that_o say_v the_o refuter_fw-la p._n 134._o be_v not_o the_o charge_n of_o bishop_n but_o of_o apostle_n ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v the_o charge_n which_o james_n have_v the_o charge_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o of_o a_o apostle_n now_o what_o answer_n make_v the_o doct._n in_o his_o defence_n the_o proposition_n be_v his_o own_o he_o love_v his_o credit_n and_o he_o will_v not_o recall_v it_o what_o then_o do_v he_o contradict_v the_o assumption_n and_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n while_o they_o govern_v joint_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v the_o charge_n not_o of_o apostle_n but_o of_o bishop_n in_o the_o very_a function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o
he_o suppose_v james_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o be_v no_o for_o than_o he_o shall_v throttle_v his_o own_o answer_n to_o doct._n whitaker_n first_o argument_n pag._n 57_o where_o he_o flat_o deni_v any_o of_o the_o apostle_n james_n except_v to_o be_v properly_z bishop_n and_o by_o his_o distinction_n of_o the_o time_n both_o here_o and_o page_n 52_o he_o plain_o signifi_v that_o the_o indefinite_a commission_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n receive_v no_o limitation_n till_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direction_n they_o disperse_v themselves_o some_o into_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o some_o into_o a_o other_o what_o then_o when_o plain_a deal_n will_v not_o help_v a_o aequivocate_a answer_n must_v serve_v the_o turn_n as_o though_o say_v he_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v episcope_n act._n 1._o 20._o that_o be_v bishopric_n and_o as_o though_o james_n who_o before_o be_v a_o apostle_n absolute_o do_v not_o by_o this_o designment_n become_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o though_o say_v i_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o use_v the_o word_n episcope_n when_o he_o so_o entile_v the_o charge_n &_o function_n of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 1._o 20._o in_o a_o large_a sense_n for_o a_o universal_a and_o unlimited_a bishopric_n than_o the_o word_n episcope_n &_o episcopo●_n be_v take_v either_o in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n as_o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o 2._o act._n 20._o 28._o phil._n 1._o 1._o when_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o such_o as_o have_v the_o stand_a charge_n of_o one_o church_n or_o in_o the_o doctor_n understanding_n when_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n or_o bishopric_n be_v give_v to_o james_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o as_o though_o james_n do_v not_o receive_v a_o great_a change_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o charge_n and_o function_n when_o be_v at_o the_o first_o a_o apostle_n absolute_o he_o be_v make_v the_o bishop_n of_o one_o particular_a church_n by_o his_o assignment_n to_o jerusalem_n as_o though_o also_o the_o doctor_n do_v not_o at_o unaware_o justify_v his_o refuters_n assumption_n in_o grant_v that_o james_n before_o his_o assignment_n to_o the_o particular_a charge_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la be_v a_o apostle_n absolute_o for_o if_o he_o be_v absolute_o a_o apostle_n while_o he_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o common_a with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n then_o they_o also_o in_o that_o time_n be_v absolute_o apostle_n and_o consequent_o their_o charge_n there_o be_v not_o the_o charge_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o of_o apostle_n as_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v wherefore_o unless_o he_o will_v recall_v that_o which_o as_o yet_o he_o stand_v forth_o to_o maintain_v viz._n that_o the_o charge_n which_o james_n have_v in_o particular_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o same_o and_o no_o other_o than_o that_o the_o apostle_n before_o have_v in_o common_a he_o must_v bear_v the_o loss_n of_o all_o his_o labour_n in_o plead_v for_o james_n his_o bishopric_n for_o it_o will_v follow_v necessary_o upon_o the_o premise_n of_o the_o argument_n before_o set_v down_o that_o james_n his_o charge_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o charge_n not_o of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o of_o a_o apostle_n and_o thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v concern_v james_n let_v we_o now_o hear_v what_o the_o d._n can_v say_v for_o the_o bishopric_n of_o tim_n &_o titus_n chap._n 8._o answer_v the_o first_o 8._o section_n of_o the_o doctor_n 4._o chap._n lib._n 4._o and_o show_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n as_o the_o doctor_n suppose_v from_o jerusalem_n the_o doctor_n traveil_v to_o ephesus_n and_o to_o crect_n doct._n sect._n 1_o ad_fw-la sect_n 1._o &_o pag._n 74._o of_o the_o doct._n in_o hope_n to_o show_v the_o place_n where_o and_o the_o person_n who_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n and_o that_o first_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o so_o he_o promise_v pag._n 72._o of_o his_o sermon_n and_o to_o make_v it_o good_a he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o he_o have_v ordain_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_z titus_n of_o crete_n the_o epistle_n themselves_o be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v commit_v unto_o they_o episcopal_a authority_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o in_o the_o epistle_n be_v presuppose_v so_o do_v he_o by_o those_o epistle_n inform_v they_o and_o in_o they_o all_o bishop_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o function_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n as_o tit._n 1._o 5._o &_o 1_o tim._n 2._o 22_o and_o second_o in_o regard_n of_o jurisdiction_n as_o 1._o tim._n 1._o 3_o &_o 〈◊〉_d 19_o 20._o 21._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 16._o titus_n 1._o 10._o 11._o and_o 3._o 9_o these_o be_v his_o word_n and_o the_o very_a pith_n of_o his_o argument_n where_o first_o let_v the_o reader_n observe_v that_o he_o bind_v himself_o to_o maintain_v this_o assertion_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o tim._n and_o tit._n that_o he_o have_v ordain_v the_o one_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o crete_n which_o if_o he_o have_v as_o sound_o confirm_v as_o he_o do_v confident_o undertake_v actum_fw-la esset_fw-la de_fw-la certamine_fw-la the_o controversy_n have_v soon_o be_v end_v but_o how_o shall_v this_o be_v make_v apparent_a by_o s._n paul_n epistle_n when_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v produce_v from_o thence_o any_o one_o word_n that_o sound_v that_o way_n yea_o it_o repent_v he_o as_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v apparent_a by_o his_o epistle_n for_o in_o his_o defence_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v by_o s._n paul_n ordain_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n he_o make_v this_o his_o first_o reason_n pag._n 74._o because_o in_o his_o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o it_o be_v presuppose_v that_o they_o be_v by_o he_o ordain_v bishop_n of_o those_o church_n and_o the_o antecedent_n he_o prove_v pag._n 75._o by_o this_o argument_n because_o it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o epistle_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v commit_v to_o they_o episcopal_a authority_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n to_o be_v exercise_v in_o those_o church_n whereas_o if_o he_o have_v stick_v close_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o sermon_n in_o dissolve_v as_o now_o he_o will_v needs_o his_o first_o sentence_n into_o a_o two_o fold_v reason_n he_o shall_v have_v argue_v thus_o it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v commit_v episcopal_a authority_n to_o they_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v apparent_a by_o those_o epistle_n that_o he_o have_v ordain_v they_o bishop_n but_o though_o he_o see_v it_o he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o be_v see_v to_o argument_n the_o doct._n reason_v loose_o change_v his_o term_n and_o argument_n and_o then_o tax_v his_o refuter_fw-la for_o not_o answer_v his_o argument_n argue_v thus_o loose_o and_o as_o we_o have_v often_o do_v so_o again_o must_v we_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o change_v at_o his_o pleasure_n not_o only_o his_o term_n or_o phrase_n but_o also_o his_o very_a argument_n but_o when_o he_o take_v this_o liberty_n he_o wrong_v his_o refuter_fw-la against_o all_o equity_n to_o tax_v he_o as_o he_o do_v both_o here_o and_o hereafter_o pag._n 78._o lin_v 16._o for_o not_o answer_v his_o argument_n for_o who_o can_v answer_v a_o objection_n before_o he_o hear_v it_o and_o who_o that_o consider_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o first_o sentence_n before_o set_v down_o will_v have_v dream_v a_o twofold_a reason_n to_o be_v enfold_v therein_o nay_o who_o will_v not_o have_v judge_v as_o the_o refuter_fw-la do_v that_o the_o late_a clause_n have_v be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a but_o to_o take_v his_o argument_n as_o he_o have_v now_o tender_v they_o when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o paul_n have_v ordain_v they_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o their_o ordination_n to_o the_o episcopal_a charge_n of_o those_o church_n be_v presuppose_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o i_o utter_o reject_v his_o assertion_n as_o a_o false_a presupposal_n or_o rather_o forgery_n of_o his_o own_o which_o have_v no_o warrant_n from_o any_o line_n or_o letter_n in_o those_o epistle_n and_o to_o his_o proof_n thereof_o viz._n because_o it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o those_o epistle_n that_o the_o apostle_n
have_v commit_v to_o they_o episcopal_a authority_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n to_o be_v exercise_v in_o those_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o he_o mingle_v and_o that_o deceitful_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n together_o for_o think_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o epistle_n do_v presuppose_v a_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n commit_v to_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o false_a and_o he_o but_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o assume_v it_o for_o truth_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o ordain_v and_o censure_v be_v a_o authority_n episcopal_a that_o be_v proper_a to_o bishop_n only_o and_o that_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v give_v they_o either_o then_o and_o not_o before_o when_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o stay_v in_o those_o place_n or_o there_o and_o no_o where_o else_o to_o be_v exercise_v by_o they_o a_o bare_a denial_n of_o these_o particular_n false_o presuppose_v by_o the_o doctor_n be_v sufficient_a answer_n till_o he_o prove_v by_o some_o part_n of_o paul_n epistle_n that_o they_o be_v by_o he_o presuppose_v in_o they_o his_o second_o argument_n in_o his_o own_o analysis_n be_v the_o same_o which_o 57_o sect._n 2._o add_v pag._n 75._o &_o sect_n 2._o p._n 75_o 76._o &_o 57_o his_o refuter_fw-la take_v to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o it_o stand_v thus_o if_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o tim._n and_o tit._n be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n inform_v they_o and_o in_o they_o all_o bishop_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o function_n then_o tim._n and_o tit._n be_v bishop_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a therefore_o the_o consequent_a to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o consequence_n or_o proposition_n the_o doct._n be_v tell_v answ_o pag._n 137._o that_o the_o consequent_a depend_v not_o upon_o the_o antecedent_n but_o with_o this_o supposition_n which_o be_v false_a that_o the_o apostle_n by_o describe_v in_o these_o epistle_n the_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n intend_v to_o inform_v tim._n &_o tit._n as_o bishop_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o bishop_n how_o to_o carry_v themselves_o in_o those_o matter_n and_o if_o the_o doct._n have_v be_v as_o willing_a to_o apprehend_v his_o right_a meaning_n as_o to_o pick_v occasion_n of_o quarrel_v without_o any_o just_a cause_n give_v he_o may_v have_v discern_v that_o the_o supposition_n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v not_o of_o the_o natural_a hypothesis_n of_o the_o proposition_n impugn_a but_o such_o a_o limitation_n of_o the_o antecedent_n or_o assumption_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v supply_v if_o he_o will_v have_v the_o proposition_n or_o consequence_n to_o pass_v uncontrolled_a wherefore_o as_o he_o may_v have_v spare_v his_o crocadile-like_a mourning_n over_o his_o ref_n alas_o good_a man_n you_o know_v not_o what_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o hypotheticall_a proposition_n 〈◊〉_d so_o have_v he_o weigh_v his_o own_o rule_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o sect_n 3._o for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o that_o hypothesis_n which_o in_o a_o connexive_a argument_n be_v want_v to_o make_v a_o perfect_a syllogism_n perhaps_o he_o may_v have_v perceive_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o consequence_n which_o he_o will_v seem_v not_o to_o see_v for_o the_o true_a hypothesis_n which_o be_v employ_v in_o this_o connexive_a argument_n and_o must_v be_v supply_v to_o make_v it_o a_o perfect_a simple_a syllogism_n can_v be_v none_o other_o than_o this_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v bishop_n and_o ordain_v to_o that_o function_n to_o who_o such_o epistle_n be_v direct_v as_o be_v pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n etc._n etc._n or_o more_o general_o thus_o every_o person_n to_o who_o a_o epistle_n or_o speech_n it_o the_o doct._n discern_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o argument_n exchange_v it_o be_v direct_v which_o contain_v the_o pattern_n or_o precedent_n of_o any_o function_n or_o direction_n how_o to_o exercise_v it_o be_v undoubted_o invest_v in_o the_o same_o function_n and_o why_o now_o i_o pray_v you_o good_a mr._n doct._n may_v not_o this_o proposition_n be_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o i_o will_v spa●e_v labour_n in_o refute_v it_o for_o i_o suppose_v yourself_o perceive_v the_o weakness_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o give_v we_o the_o exchange_n of_o a_o other_o argument_n though_o you_o pretend_v another_o cause_n of_o the_o exchange_n and_o since_o you_o will_v not_o argue_v with_o t._n c._n to_o who_o answerthe_n ref_n direct_o point_v as_o with_o the_o finger_n but_o be_v willing_a to_o let_v he_o rest_v in_o peace_n neither_o will_v i_o argue_v against_o doctor_n whitgift_n but_o afford_v he_o the_o like_a kindness_n only_o whereas_o you_o ask_v the_o refuter_fw-la how_o he_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a or_o without_o judgement_n as_o to_o think_v that_o doct._n whitgift_n in_o speak_v of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n contain_v in_o those_o epistle_n do_v mean_a only_o that_o description_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o be_v set_v down_o 1._o tim._n 3_o to_o requite_v your_o kindness_n i_o demand_v how_o you_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a or_o void_a of_o judgement_n as_o to_o think_v that_o when_o doctor_n whitgift_n say_v that_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o tim_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n see_v therein_o be_v contain_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n &_o diverse_a precept_n peculiar_a to_o that_o function_n he_o mean_v by_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n that_o ministry_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o minister_n for_o so_o you_o seem_v to_o interpret_v his_o word_n when_o you_o affirm_v pag._n 76._o this_o to_o be_v his_o meaning_n that_o direction_n be_v give_v to_o timothy_n throughout_o the_o epistle_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o office_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o ministry_n common_a to_o all_o minister_n or_o of_o his_o episcopal_a function_n chief_o in_o regard_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o herein_o you_o tender_v his_o credit_n less_o than_o you_o will_v seem_v when_o you_o make_v he_o to_o argue_v in_o this_o fashion_n the_o epistle_n write_v to_o timothy_n do_v give_v he_o direction_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o episcopal_a function_n ergo_fw-la they_o do_v declare_v that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n for_o this_o be_v to_o make_v he_o guilty_a of_o your_o own_o fault_n in_o beg_v of_o the_o question_n question_n the_o doct._n beg_v the_o question_n as_o you_o do_v when_o you_o add_v to_o your_o assumption_n or_o antecedent_n that_o supposition_n before_o examine_v for_o if_o that_o be_v as_o you_o say_v it_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o assumption_n then_o your_o second_o argument_n beg_v the_o question_n in_o pitiful_a manner_n thus_o the_o apostle_n intent_n in_o his_o epistle_n write_v to_o tim_n and_o tit_n be_v to_o inform_v they_o as_o bishop_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o episcopal_a function_n ergo_fw-la those_o epistle_n show_v that_o they_o be_v bishop_n no_o merveil_v therefore_o if_o the_o doctor_n be_v desirous_a to_o cover_v the_o beggary_n of_o his_o reason_n with_o the_o 3._o sect._n 3._o ad_fw-la pag._n 77._o &_o 78._o sect_n 3._o shredd_v of_o a_o new_a shape_a syllogism_n which_o dispute_v thus_o whosoever_o describe_v unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o office_n and_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n do_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n he_o presuppose_v they_o to_o be_v bishop_n the_o one_o of_o ephesus_n the_o other_o of_o crete_n but_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n describe_v unto_o they_o their_o office_n and_o authorittie_a as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n etc._n etc._n do_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n therefore_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n presuppose_v they_o to_o be_v bishop_n the_o one_o of_o ephesus_n the_o other_o of_o crect_n into_o this_o new_a frame_n he_o cast_v his_o argument_n as_o he_o pretend_v because_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v confound_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o hypotheticall_a proposition_n but_o the_o reader_n be_v rather_o to_o judge_v that_o a_o false_a supposal_n of_o confusion_n in_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v transport_v the_o doctor_n into_o such_o a_o maze_n that_o he_o have_v confound_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o reason_n the_o d._n confound_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o reason_n reason_n for_o where_o he_o shall_v according_a to_o his_o own_o project_n sect_n 1._o of_o
sect._n 5._o add_v sect_n 4._o pag_n 78._o 79._o oecumenius_n and_o gregory_n who_o testify_v as_o he_o say_v that_o the_o episle_n teach_v bishop_n how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v a_o secret_a confession_n that_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o conclude_v from_o saint_n paul_n own_o word_n that_o which_o he_o undertake_v to_o make_v apparent_a by_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n but_o because_o the_o doctor_n will_v needs_o fit_a to_o this_o last_o assumption_n &_o the_o proof_n thereof_o that_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v to_o another_o i_o will_v first_o reduce_v it_o to_o the_o part_n of_o his_o reason_n &_o then_o peruse_v the_o force_n which_o he_o bend_v against_o it_o whereas_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o episcopal_a authority_n chief_o consist_v in_o those_o particular_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v in_o charge_n if_o by_o episcopal_a authority_n he_o mean_v that_o which_o bishop_n have_v now_o get_v into_o their_o hand_n and_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o than_o the_o proposition_n be_v false_a and_o the_o falsehood_n thereof_o make_v plain_a by_o that_o suppose_a case_n of_o a_o democracie_n in_o time_n change_v into_o a_o aristocracy_n and_o afterward_o into_o a_o monarchy_n lay_v down_o by_o the_o doctor_n in_o his_o refuter_n word_n pag._n 79._o but_o if_o he_o understand_v by_o episcopal_a authority_n that_o which_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o with_o their_o allowance_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n then_o the_o assumption_n and_o the_o proof_n thereof_o be_v contradict_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o direction_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n apperteyn_v not_o to_o diocesan_n bishop_n for_o the_o apostle_n dream_v of_o no_o such_o sovereignty_n but_o in_o particular_a unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n by_o a_o high_a power_n as_o evangelist_n &_o in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o presbyter_n as_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n in_o their_o several_a congregation_n in_o the_o church_n right_a to_o administer_v they_o to_o impugn_v this_o answer_n first_o he_o labour_v by_o two_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v not_o perform_v those_o thing_n by_o a_o high_a power_n viz._n 1._o because_o they_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o a_o power_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n until_o the_o end_n 2._o because_o the_o power_n whereby_o bishop_n do_v the_o thing_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v in_o commission_n be_v so_o much_o of_o the_o apostolical_a power_n as_o be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n but_o if_o the_o doctor_n have_v observe_v his_o refuters_n meaning_n who_o by_o a_o high_a power_n understand_v that_o power_n of_o office_n which_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n for_o be_v evangelist_n he_o may_v perhaps_o have_v perceive_v the_o deceit_n that_o lie_v in_o his_o own_o reason_n for_o although_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v and_o censure_v consider_v simple_o and_o in_o general_a as_o the_o refuter_fw-la speak_v be_v such_o as_o be_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o presbyter_n though_o now_o by_o bishop_n appropriate_v to_o themselves_o as_o he_o also_o grant_v yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o as_o the_o apostle_n so_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v evangelist_n do_v perform_v those_o work_n by_o a_o high_a power_n that_o be_v a_o power_n seat_v in_o a_o high_a office_n but_o if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v those_o thing_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o office_n that_o be_v to_o continue_v and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o do_v those_o work_n be_v derive_v to_o bishop_n by_o apostolical_a allowance_n what_o else_o do_v he_o but_o continue_v his_o old_a trade_n of_o beg_v 2._o in_o like_a manner_n he_o deceive_v himself_o and_o his_o reader_n when_o he_o fasten_v a_o contradiction_n on_o his_o refuter_fw-la in_o say_v the_o apostle_n dream_v not_o of_o any_o such_o sovereignty_n as_o now_o be_v in_o bishop_n above_o presbyter_n when_o he_o have_v before_o say_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o a_o high_a power_n to_o wit_n of_o their_o evangelisticall_a function_n which_o bishop_n have_v now_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o 3._o and_o he_o argue_v too_o loose_o when_o to_o prove_v a_o falsehood_n in_o the_o refuter_n assertion_n viz._n that_o those_o instruction_n be_v give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o evangelist_n he_o say_v they_o be_v give_v they_o as_o they_o be_v particular_o assign_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n for_o it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a but_o very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o office_n of_o evangelist_n to_o be_v assign_v unto_o the_o government_n of_o particular_a church_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o apostle_n on_o who_o they_o attend_v 4._o in_o deed_n if_o the_o doctor_n can_v give_v we_o any_o one_o sentence_n in_o those_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n show_v the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n to_o belong_v proper_o to_o diocesan_n bishop_n i_o will_v free_o confess_v the_o refuter_fw-la have_v err_v in_o deny_v it_o and_o affirm_v the_o charge_n thereof_o to_o belong_v in_o general_a unto_o the_o presbyter_n but_o though_o we_o have_v wait_v all_o this_o while_n for_o the_o demonstration_n of_o this_o point_n from_o the_o apostle_n writing_n yet_o we_o hear_v no_o news_n of_o any_o argument_n that_o clear_o deduce_v this_o conclusion_n from_o any_o word_n or_o phrase_n which_o paul_n use_v in_o his_o epistle_n only_o he_o say_v he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v this_o point_n before_o lib._n 3._o wherefore_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o worthy_o he_o dispute_v there_o in_o defence_n of_o his_o diocesan_n lord_n i_o will_v pray_v leave_n to_o lay_v down_o in_o open_a view_n what_o he_o here_o refer_v we_o unto_o in_o his_o three_o book_n cap._n 3._o sect_n 1._o he_o give_v a_o threefold_a superiority_n 6._o section_n 6._o unto_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n viz._n singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n power_n of_o ordination_n and_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n all_o which_o he_o ground_v upon_o tit._n 1._o 5._o and_o because_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v deny_v titus_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n he_o refer_v his_o reader_n there_o for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o to_o that_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o which_o we_o have_v now_o to_o examine_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o desire_v he_o to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v in_o like_a manner_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n cap._n 5._o sect_n 18._o he_o argue_v that_o bishop_n have_v corrective_a power_n over_o the_o presbyter_n because_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v such_o power_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n as_o he_o prove_v if_o we_o may_v believe_v he_o by_o most_o evident_a testimony_n out_o of_o paul_n epistle_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 1._o tim._n 1._o 3_o &_o 4._o 19-22_a and_o unto_o his_o refuter_n answer_v viz._n that_o tim._n and_o titus_n be_v not_o bishop_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o prove_v they_o be_v he_o return_v this_o reply_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n on_o both_o side_n &_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o find_v my_o proffe_n say_v he_o for_o their_o be_v bishop_n better_a than_o he_o to_o the_o contrary_a let_v he_o believe_v i_o in_o nothing_o lo●_n here_o his_o word_n and_o how_o confident_o he_o rely_v aforehand_o upon_o his_o proof_n which_o he_o mean_v to_o produce_v for_o this_o assertion_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n notwithstanding_o when_o he_o come_v to_o make_v this_o apparent_a &_o that_o by_o the_o scripture_n yea_o by_z s._n paul_n epistle_n write_v unto_o they_o the_o main_a issue_n of_o his_o whole_a reason_n come_v at_o last_o to_o this_o effect_n episcopal_a authority_n consist_v chief_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n but_o the_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n principal_o consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n ergo_fw-la their_o authority_n be_v episcopal_a and_o consequent_o they_o be_v bishop_n here_o now_o if_o the_o proposition_n be_v doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v we_o be_v send_v back_o to_o this_o former_a disputation_n where_o he_o beg_v that_o this_o conclusion_n may_v be_v take_v for_o grant_v be_v there_o any_o likelihood_n think_v you_o that_o we_o shall_v ever_o find_v a_o good_a end_n put_v to_o this_o controversy_n when_o 81._o sect._n 7._o add_v sect_n 5._o &_o 6._o p._n 80._o 81._o we_o must_v dance_v the_o round_a after_o the_o doctor_n pipe_n in_o this_o fashion_n but_o leave_v the_o doctor_n
to_o the_o reader_n sentence_n therein_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o that_o example_n or_o supposal_n before_o mention_v the_o rather_o for_o that_o he_o most_o proud_o insult_v over_o his_o refuter_fw-la as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o brownist_n or_o anabaptist_n or_o have_v broach_v sundry_a schismatical_a novelty_n as_o i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a once_o again_o to_o lay_v down_o his_o word_n to_o the_o reader_n view_n so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o clear_v he_o from_o those_o ●oul_a imputation_n suppose_v say_v he_o a_o democracy_n where_o the_o common_a wealth_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o people_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o in_o such_o a_o place_n there_o be_v law_n for_o the_o choose_n admit_v order_v and_o consure_v of_o officer_n and_o direct_v they_o how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o their_o office_n what_o if_o this_o government_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o nobility_n which_o continue_v the_o same_o law_n still_o in_o the_o same_o case_n what_o if_o some_o one_o mighty_a than_o the_o rest_n at_o the_o last_o make_v himself_o sole-governour_n still_o observe_v those_o fundamental_a law_n which_o be_v at_o the_o first_o establish_v be_v it_o to_o be_v say_v that_o those_o law_n be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o aristocratical_a and_o monarchical_a government_n whereby_o the_o first_o maker_n of_o those_o law_n will_v inform_v in_o the_o one_o the_o nobility_n in_o the_o other_o the_o monarchy_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o how_o to_o exercise_v that_o function_n the_o administration_n of_o church_n matter_n touch_v ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v first_o in_o the_o several_a church_n or_o congregation_n which_o by_o their_o presbytery_n have_v the_o manage_n of_o all_o church-busines_n in_o process_n of_o time_n it_o come_v to_o be_v restreyn_v to_o the_o clergy_n only_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbytery_n of_o minister_n only_o at_o last_o as_o thing_n grow_v wor●●_n and_o worse_a the_o bishop_n like_o a_o monarch_n g●●t_v the_o reign_v into_o his_o own_o hand_n now_o though_o the_o law_n of_o ordi●a●im_n and_o jurisdiction_n remeine_v the_o same_o and_o the_o practice_n also_o in_o some_o sort_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o pattern_n and_o precedent_n either_o of_o the_o second_o or_o three_o kind_n of_o government_n neither_o be_v they_o give_v to_o instruct_v the_o bishop_n alone_o or_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o clergy_n together_o these_o be_v the_o refuter_n word_n now_o the_o doct._n have_v first_o solace_v himself_o in_o a_o idle_a repetition_n of_o the_o particular_n interlace_v with_o scornful_a gibe_n to_o show_v the_o unlearnede_a sort_n the_o trim_a idea_n as_o he_o please_v to_o speak_v of_o that_o discipline_n which_o the_o refuter_fw-la and_o his_o fellow_n challenger_n have_v forge_v he_o come_v at_o his_o leisure_n very_o grave_o to_o refute_v his_o suppose_a novelty_n one_o after_o a_o other_o in_o this_o order_n first_o it_o be_v here_o presuppose_a say_v he_o that_o every_o church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v a_o parish_n etc._n etc._n which_o dotage_n i_o have_v before_o refute_v shall_v i_o say_v that_o we_o have_v before_o prove_v his_o assertion_n that_o the_o first_o church_n be_v proper_o diocese_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a dotage_n i_o will_v rather_o say_v he_o may_v well_o have_v spare_v the_o mention_n of_o this_o controversy_n see_v the_o refuter_fw-la do_v not_o once_o mention_v the_o word_n parish_n or_o parishonall_a the_o second_o suppose_a novelty_n he_o make_v this_o that_o the_o foruse_v of_o church_n government_n at_o first_o be_v democraticall_a or_o popular_a the_o chief_a authority_n be_v in_o the_o people_n which_o by_o the_o presbytery_n do_v ordain_v and_o censure_v all_o church-officer_n his_o refuter_n word_n be_v these_o the_o administration_n of_o church-matter_n be_v first_o in_o the_o several_a church_n or_o congregation_n which_o by_o their_o presbyter_n have_v the_o manage_n of_o all_o church-busynes_a and_o again_o the_o right_n be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o execution_n in_o the_o presbytery_n but_o do_v the_o doctor_n speak_v as_o he_o think_v when_o he_o call_v this_o schismatical_a novelty_n and_o for_o this_o esteem_v his_o refuter_fw-la a_o brownist_n or_o anabaptist_n know_v he_o who_o he_o wound_v in_o thus_o censure_v he_o &_o his_o opinion_n have_v he_o never_o observe_v in_o his_o read_v the_o century_n cent_n 2._o col._n 134._o this_o say_n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la probatos_fw-la authores_fw-la huius_fw-la s●●uli_fw-la perspiciat_fw-la videbit_fw-la formang●bernationis_fw-la propemodum_fw-la democratias_fw-la similem_fw-la fuisse_fw-la singulae_fw-la enim_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la parem_fw-la habebant_fw-la potestatem_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la pure_a decendi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la administrandi_fw-la absolvendiet_n excommunicandi_fw-la haereticos_fw-la &_o scelerátos_fw-la ministros_fw-la eligendi_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la &_o justissimas_fw-la ob_fw-la causas_fw-la iterum_fw-la deponendi_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o same_o word_n be_v record_v also_o in_o catalogo_fw-la test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 2._o col._n 108._o but_o more_o direct_o to_o purpose_n speak_v d._n whitgist_n in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 180._o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v popular_a and_o pag._n 182_o i_o therefore_o call_v it_o popular_a say_v he_o because_o the_o church_n itself_o that_o be_v the_o whole_a multitude_n have_v interest_n almost_o in_o everything_o shall_v he_o be_v now_o with_o the_o doctor_n a_o brownist_n or_o anabaptist_n for_o so_o say_v and_o why_o shall_v not_o thomas_n bell_n a_o profess_a enemy_n to_o all_o brownist_n and_o whole_o devote_v to_o the_o prelate_n service_n be_v tax_v of_o schismatical_a novelty_n for_o teach_v as_o he_o do_v that_o excommunication_n precise_o and_o chief_o perteyn_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o she_o have_v authority_n to_o commit_v the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o some_o special_a person_n fit_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o choose_v for_o that_o end_n this_o he_o say_v and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o christ_n word_n math._n 18._o 17._o 18._o dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tell_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o understanding_n unto_o the_o whole_a congregation_n see_v his_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 12._o sect_n 4._o if_o his_o credit_n be_v little_a worth_n which_o the_o doctor_n yet_o i_o think_v he_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o justify_v the_o rhemist_n and_o bellarmin_n against_o doctor_n fulk_n and_o doct._n willet_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o right_a and_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o so_o of_o excommunication_n belong_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o the_o pastor_n &_o prelate_n exercise_n it_o as_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n so_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n see_v doctor_n fulk_n answ_o to_o the_o rhem_n on_o 1._o cor._n 5._o sect_n and_o d._n willet_n synop_n count_n 5._o quest_n 4._o part_n 2._o but_o mr._n beza_n if_o you_o will_v believe_v the_o doct._n make_v mention_n of_o one_o morellius_n who_o plead_v in_o like_a manner_n for_o the_o popular_a government_n give_v he_o this_o stile_n democraticus_fw-la quidem_fw-la fanaticus_fw-la de_fw-fr minist_n gradibus_fw-la cap._n 23._o pag._n 155._o but_o mr_n bezaes_n word_n in_o that_o place_n do_v show_v that_o he_o give_v that_o stile_n to_o morellius_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o this_o that_o he_o presume_v by_o word_n and_o writing_n to_o reprehend_v that_o order_n which_o for_o election_n of_o church-officer_n be_v religious_o and_o prudent_o observe_v in_o the_o city_n of_o geneva_n which_o be_v such_o as_o well_o accord_v with_o the_o refuter_n doctrine_n for_o it_o allow_v the_o church_n to_o be_v electionum_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la conscia_fw-la et_fw-la approbatrix_fw-la to_o take_v notice_n and_o give_v approbation_n howsoever_o a_o prerogative_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pastor_n &_o magistrate_n to_o go_v before_o the_o people_n in_o the_o choice_n 2._o notwithstanding_o the_o doctor_n ask_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o frenzy_n to_o urge_v the_o people_n supremacy_n in_o church_n government_n and_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o show_n in_o scripture_n or_o in_o reason_n that_o the_o sheep_n shall_v rule_v their_o shepherd_n or_o the_o flock_n their_o pastor_n say_v as_o much_o shall_v be_v grant_v as_o his_o question_n imply_v must_v he_o not_o first_o prove_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la give_v supremacy_n of_o rule_n unto_o the_o sheep_n or_o people_n over_o their_o pastor_n before_o he_o can_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o a_o fanatical_a spirit_n against_o scripture_n &_o reason_n but_o be_v there_o not_o want_v of_o judgement_n rather_o in_o the_o doctor_n that_o imagine_v the_o pastor_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o sheep_n or_o people_n when_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o whole_a body_n have_v the_o manage_n of_o all_o church-affaire_n by_o her_o presbyter_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a member_n do_v not_o cyprian_n that_o holy_a martyr_n say_v lib._n 1._o epist_n 4._o
commandment_n give_v to_o timothy_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o same_o office_n mr_n calvin_n say_v he_o understand_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o commandment_n those_o thing_n whereof_o he_o have_v hitherto_o discourse_v concern_v the_o office_n of_o timothy_n and_o do_v not_o we_o also_o understand_v the_o thing_n or_o work_n give_v in_o charge_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o commandment_n neither_o deny_v we_o that_o those_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o office_n or_o ministry_n of_o timothy_n yet_o we_o refuse_v that_o succession_n in_o the_o same_o ministerial_a function_n which_o the_o doct._n will_v wring_v if_o he_o can_v tell_v how_o out_o of_o paul_n charge_n to_o perform_v the_o thing_n so_o command_v until_o christ_n second_o come_v 2._o true_a it_o be_v that_o t._n c._n and_o other_o find_v among_o other_o precept_n in_o paul_n epistle_n to_o timothy_n this_o that_o the_o govern_n elder_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v as_o well_o as_o the_o teacher_n do_v from_o thence_o conclude_v the_o continuance_n of_o both_o function_n and_o why_o shall_v they_o not_o since_o the_o continuance_n of_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n be_v of_o all_o interpreter_n right_o gather_v from_o the_o rule_n that_o be_v lay_v down_o concern_v their_o function_n 1._o tim._n 3._o the_o former_a be_v no_o less_o ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a than_o the_o late_a yet_o the_o continuance_n of_o timothy_n his_o office_n can_v be_v conclude_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n till_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o his_o function_n be_v also_o perpetual_a and_o not_o extraordinary_a 3._o as_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o ambrose_n it_o nothing_o help_v the_o doctor_n except_o it_o be_v to_o show_v how_o gross_o he_o play_v the_o sophister_n in_o thus_o argue_v s._n paul_n in_o his_o word_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 14._o have_v regard_n unto_o timothees_n successor_n that_o they_o after_o his_o example_n may_v continue_v the_o well_o order_v of_o the_o church_n so_o say_v s._n ambrose_n ergo_fw-la in_o his_o understanding_n say_v the_o doct._n he_o mean_v such_o as_o succeed_v timothy_n in_o the_o same_o office_n as_o though_o the_o father_n do_v confound_v the_o office_n of_o apostle_n &_o evangelist_n with_o those_o pastor_n &_o bishop_n which_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o say_v the_o late_a be_v successor_n to_o the_o former_a 4._o his_o reason_n follow_v now_o to_o be_v examine_v whatsoever_o authority_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a and_o such_o as_o without_o which_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v be_v govern_v nor_o yet_o continue_v the_o same_o be_v not_o peculiar_a to_o extraordinary_a person_n or_o to_o die_v with_o they_o but_o by_o a_o ordinary_a derivation_n to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n but_o the_o authority_n commit_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a and_o such_o as_o without_o which_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v be_v govern_v as_o without_o jurisdiction_n nor_o continue_v as_o without_o ordination_n therefore_o the_o authority_n commit_v to_o they_o be_v not_o peculiar_a to_o they_o as_o extraordinary_a person_n but_o by_o a_o ordinary_a derivation_n to_o be_v continue_v in_o those_o that_o succeed_v they_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v as_o before_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o succession_n at_o large_a in_o authority_n only_o he_o wander_v from_o the_o question_n if_o of_o succession_n in_o the_o same_o office_n i_o disclaim_v the_o late_a branch_n of_o the_o proposition_n for_o all_o man_n know_v by_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o pastoral_n authority_n by_o which_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v still_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n whereas_o the_o dispensation_n of_o these_o holy_a thing_n be_v first_o commit_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o apostle_n math._n 28._o 19_o 20._o that_o the_o perpetual_a necessity_n of_o a_o authority_n to_o perform_v this_o or_o that_o ministerial_a work_n do_v not_o necessary_o require_v any_o to_o succeed_v in_o the_o same_o function_n that_o first_o enjoy_v that_o authority_n and_o this_o be_v so_o evident_a a_o truth_n that_o rather_o than_o the_o doctor_n will_v contradict_v it_o he_o will_v become_v non-suite_n in_o this_o point_n and_o persuade_v his_o reader_n if_o he_o can_v that_o succession_n in_o authority_n only_o which_o be_v never_o deny_v be_v sufficient_a for_o his_o purpose_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v before_o sufficient_o make_v manifest_a to_o follow_v he_o therefore_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o proposition_n he_o say_v 85._o sect._n 12._o add_v sect_n 8._o pag_n 85._o it_o be_v ground_v on_o this_o hypothesis_n that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o therefore_o reason_v thus_o if_o the_o successor_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n then_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v to_o inform_v their_o successor_n be_v write_v to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n but_o the_o successor_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n therefore_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v to_o inform_v their_o successor_n be_v write_v to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n here_o the_o doctor_n be_v again_o to_o be_v advertise_v that_o the_o true_a hypothesis_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n be_v this_o that_o diocesan_n bishop_n not_o only_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la be_v but_o also_o de_fw-fr jure_v aught_o to_o have_v be_v successor_n unto_o timothy_n &_o titus_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o authority_n &_o therefore_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o late_a proposition_n which_o mention_v their_o succession_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la only_o be_v too_o weak_a for_o unless_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o s._n paul_n intend_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n shall_v succeed_v they_o his_o writing_n of_o purpose_n to_o direct_v their_o successor_n can_v argue_v that_o he_o mean_v by_o they_o to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n it_o have_v be_v fit_a therefore_o the_o doctor_n have_v show_v from_o some_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o these_o epistle_n or_o from_o some_o other_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n aim_v at_o the_o succession_n of_o such_o bishop_n but_o this_o be_v too_o hard_a a_o task_n for_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o their_o succession_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la can_v be_v deny_v if_o their_o succession_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la be_v prove_v which_o he_o indeavore_v by_o two_o argument_n first_o by_o this_o disjunction_n either_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v their_o successor_n or_o the_o presbytery_n or_o the_o whole_a congregation_n but_o neither_o the_o presbytery_n nor_o the_o whole_a congregation_n ergo_fw-la diocesan_n bishop_n as_o for_o the_o last_o member_n of_o this_o disjunction_n it_o be_v absurd_o add_v by_o the_o doctor_n howsoever_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v do_v it_o to_o please_v his_o ref_n for_o although_o he_o say_v that_o the_o right_n be_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o give_v the_o execution_n to_o the_o presbytery_n of_o each_o congregation_n neither_o yet_o be_v he_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o he_o deny_v a_o pre-eminence_n for_o order_n sake_n unto_o some_o one_o to_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o rest_n in_o execute_v that_o which_o be_v by_o the_o whole_a presbytery_n decree_v which_o pre-eminence_n as_o it_o do_v by_o right_o belong_v to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o evangelisticall_a function_n during_o their_o stay_n in_o those_o place_n so_o it_o be_v devolve_v after_o their_o departure_n to_o he_o that_o be_v primus_fw-la presbyter_n or_o proestoo_n precedent_n of_o the_o presbyter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o each_o congregation_n to_o the_o pastor_n and_o in_o a_o synod_n or_o assembly_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o presbyter_n of_o many_o church_n to_o that_o one_o which_o with_o the_o consent_n &_o choice_n of_o his_o brethren_n moderate_v the_o action_n if_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o successor_n unto_o timothy_n &_o titus_n in_o that_o special_a presidencie_n which_o they_o hold_v at_o ephesus_n and_o in_o crete_n his_o disjunction_n be_v to_o be_v disclaim_v as_o insufficient_a because_o it_o want_v the_o mention_n of_o such_o a_o precedent_n as_o we_o give_v to_o each_o presbytery_n and_o synod_n his_o second_o argument_n follow_v in_o this_o form_n those_o who_o succeed_v timothy_n and_o titus_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n be_v their_o successor_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n do_v succeed_v timothy_n &_o titus_n in_o the_o government_n of_o those_o church_n therefore_o they_o viz._n diocesan_n bishop_n be_v their_o successor_n well_o may_v you_o see_v the_o doct._n will_v fain_o be_v think_v to_o be_v rich_a idem_fw-la the_o doct._n be_v poor_a &_o prove_v idem_fw-la pe●_n idem_fw-la when_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v poor_a for_o be_v this_o argument_n any_o better_a than_o a_o beggarly_a prove_v of_o the_o point_n deny_v by_o the_o self_n
at_o rome_n and_o renew_v of_o his_o former_a traveile_n for_o 9_o year_n after_o and_o when_o this_o be_v prove_v how_o will_v he_o demonstrate_v either_o from_o paul_n epistle_n or_o any_o other_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n from_o whence_o himself_o say_v serm_n p._n 78_o the_o act_n of_o those_o 9_o year_n must_v be_v gather_v that_o paul_n make_v a_o new_a voyage_n into_o macedonia_n and_o in_o that_o traveile_n pass_v by_o ephesus_n left_a timothy_n there_o and_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v this_o be_v he_o not_o singular_a in_o his_o conceit_n that_o this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o place_v timothy_n in_o his_o bishopric_n for_o do_v not_o paul_n himfelse_a tell_v the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n when_o he_o part_v from_o they_o at_o miletum_n act._n 20._o 25._o that_o he_o know_v that_o they_o all_o among_o who_o he_o have_v go_v preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o and_o have_v the_o doctor_n forget_v that_o himself_o teach_v we_o serm_n pag._n 70._o &_o 88_o and_o pag._n 63._o of_o this_o defence_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v substitute_n bishop_n in_o their_o room_n when_o they_o be_v to_o discontinue_v from_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v plant_v and_o that_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o faction_n in_o their_o absence_n no_o reason_n therefore_o he_o shall_v think_v that_o paul_n will_v neglect_v to_o give_v they_o a_o bishop_n at_o or_o before_o so_o solemn_a a_o depart_n from_o they_o special_o see_v as_o he_o know_v he_o shall_v see_v their_o face_n no_o more_o so_o he_o foresee_v that_o after_o his_o depart_n there_o shall_v grievous_a wolf_n enter_v in_o and_o perverse_a teacher_n spring_v up_o from_o among_o themselves_o act._n 20._o 29._o 30._o to_o conclude_v therefore_o this_o question_n thus_o i_o argue_v if_o timothy_n have_v any_o ordination_n at_o all_o to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o ephesus_n the_o same_o must_v be_v at_o one_o of_o those_o journey_n which_o he_o take_v into_o macedonia_n act_n 20._o 1._o 3._o but_o he_o have_v no_o ordination_n to_o his_o bishopric_n at_o any_o of_o those_o journey_n therefore_o he_o have_v none_o at_o all_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o proposition_n be_v apparent_a by_o thing_n last_o touch_v viz._n that_o at_o paul_n last_o part_v from_o those_o coast_n he_o know_v he_o shall_v see_v they_o no_o more_o and_o that_o no_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n do_v ascribe_v this_o work_n to_o any_o latter_a voyage_n and_o in_o the_o first_o whereof_o mention_v be_v make_v act_n 16._o 10._o 12_o timothy_n be_v his_o companion_n as_o appeareth_z vers_n 1._o 3._o etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v the_o church_n at_o ephesus_n then_o plant_v much_o less_o fit_a to_o receive_v and_o maintain_v a_o bishop_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o act_n 18._o 19_o 25._o 26._o &_o 19_o 1._o 7._o etc._n etc._n as_o for_o the_o assumption_n though_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o yet_o we_o rely_v not_o on_o his_o conceit_n but_o on_o far_o sure_a ground_n for_o it_o be_v also_o show_v that_o he_o be_v not_o affix_v to_o the_o permanent_a charge_n of_o that_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o long_o stay_v there_o but_o follow_v the_o apostle_n call_v aswell_o after_o as_o before_o to_o all_o which_o i_o add_v this_o one_o reason_n more_o peculiar_o fit_v the_o time_n mention_v in_o the_o assumption_n if_o timothy_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o receive_v the_o episcopal_a charge_n of_o the_o ephesian_a church_n when_o paul_n take_v his_o leave_n of_o their_o elder_n act._n 20._o 25._o 28._o then_o be_v he_o not_o ordain_v in_o any_o of_o his_o journey_n into_o macedonia_n mention_v act._n 20._o 1._o 2._o 3._o but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la also_o the_o consequent_a the_o assumption_n or_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v as_o follow_v at_o what_o time_n the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n enjoy_v many_o bishop_n to_o who_o the_o charge_n of_o feed_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n do_v apperteine_a in_o common_a by_o special_a charge_n give_v they_o by_o st._n paul_n and_o that_o without_o any_o intimation_n of_o any_o superior_a set_v over_o they_o to_o who_o direction_n they_o shall_v yield_v obedience_n at_o that_o time_n timothy_n have_v not_o yet_o receive_v such_o a_o episcopal_a charge_n as_o give_v he_o a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n above_o all_o other_o minister_n in_o that_o church_n but_o at_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n take_n his_o leave_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o 28._o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n have_v many_o bishop_n to_o who_o the_o charge_n of_o feed_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n do_v apperteine_a in_o common_a etc._n etc._n therefore_o at_o that_o time_n timothy_n have_v not_o receive_v such_o a_o episcopal_a charge_n etc._n etc._n the_o assumption_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n act_n 20._o 28._o and_o the_o proposition_n be_v most_o apparent_a by_o the_o manifest_a opposition_n betwixt_o the_o singular_a regiment_n of_o one_o bishop_n and_o the_o joint_a charge_n of_o many_o moreover_o it_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o doctor_n secret_a allowance_n serm_n pag._n 18._o &_o 69._o and_o very_o plain_o by_o he_o that_o give_v the_o doctor_n best_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o whole_a controversy_n perpet_n govern_v pag._n 223._o there_o be_v say_v he_o a_o time_n when_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o common-advice_n of_o the_o presbyter_n as_o jerom_n affirm_v in_o this_o time_n speak_v paul_n to_o the_o presbyter_n at_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o 28._o neither_o let_v the_o doctor_n think_v here_o to_o stop_n our_o mouth_n with_o the_o shift_a answer_n which_o he_o elsewhere_o use_v viz_o that_o these_o presbyter_n govern_v only_o in_o private_a &_o as_o under_o the_o apostle_n who_o keep_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o episcopal_a authority_n for_o this_o be_v to_o contradict_v the_o apostle_n himself_o who_o plain_o resign_v to_o they_o the_o whole_a charge_n of_o that_o church_n as_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v see_v they_o no_o more_o vers_fw-la 28._o 32._o with_o 25._o 26._o it_o be_v a_o clear_a truth_n therefore_o that_o timothy_n not_o have_v then_o any_o sole_a pre-eminence_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n be_v not_o their_o bishop_n and_o consequent_o he_o be_v not_o at_o all_o ordain_v their_o bishop_n as_o be_v before_o show_v his_o allegation_n follow_v from_o diverse_a author_n which_o report_n of_o 91._o sect._n 6._o add_v sect_n 10._o p._n 91._o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o they_o live_v and_o die_v the_o one_o at_o ephesus_n the_o other_o in_o crect_n his_o refuter_fw-la tell_v he_o that_o he_o may_v credit_v the_o report_n of_o his_o author_n &_o yet_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n and_o good_a reason_n he_o have_v so_o to_o tell_v he_o because_o a_o episcopal_a function_n can_v be_v conclude_v from_o their_o live_n &_o die_v in_o that_o place_n he_o now_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o suffice_v his_o purpose_n to_o wit_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o hold_v their_o ordinary_a residence_n there_o which_o the_o objection_n deni_v therefore_o again_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o unless_o he_o will_v fit_v the_o objection_n to_o his_o own_o strength_n and_o so_o contend_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n he_o must_v prove_v more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a residence_n even_o a_o band_n of_o continuance_n there_o as_o their_o proper_a charge_n for_o till_o this_o be_v effect_v his_o proof_n be_v to_o as_o little_a purpose_n as_o those_o that_o many_o papist_n allege_v for_o peter_n bishopric_n at_o rome_n because_o towards_o his_o late_a time_n he_o there_o live_v for_o his_o ordinary_a residence_n and_o at_o length_n there_o die_v i_o add_v this_o to_o provoke_v the_o doctor_n to_o a_o better_a examination_n of_o his_o own_o witness_n that_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v such_o a_o ordinary_a residence_n as_o he_o will_v justify_v by_o they_o for_o some_o of_o they_o be_v worthy_a of_o no_o great_a credit_n as_o vincentius_n antonius_n and_o nicephorus_n author_n on_o who_o the_o leaden_a leagend_n be_v ground_v and_o dorotheus_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a that_o he_o allege_v be_v much_o abuse_v for_o he_o report_v thus_o of_o timothy_n in_o synopsi_n evangelium_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la ephesi_n exorsus_fw-la illyricum_n usque_fw-la et_fw-la in_o universa_fw-la hellade_n praedicavit_fw-la ubi_fw-la &_o mortuus_fw-la et_fw-la honorifice_fw-la s●pultus_fw-la est_fw-la that_o beginning_n at_o ephesus_n he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o illyricum_n and_o through_o all_o greece_n where_o he_o do_v and_o be_v honourable_o bury_v do_v not_o this_o direct_o contradict_v that_o which_o the_o doctor_n allege_v he_o for_o and_o plain_o argue_v that_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n as_o we_o affirm_v come_v we_o now_o to_o the_o second_o objection_n chapt._n 10._o concern_v the_o second_o objection_n against_o
also_o they_o live_v &_o dye_v i_o answer_v have_v he_o not_o by_o as_o good_a proof_n show_v james_n his_o assignment_n to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o his_o live_n and_o die_v there_o if_o then_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v true_a that_o james_n be_v not_o proper_o a_o bishop_n do_v he_o not_o reason_n loose_o when_o from_o such_o assignment_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n he_o conclude_v they_o to_o be_v proper_o bishop_n the_o refuter_n second_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o zuinglius_fw-la his_o writing_n he_o neither_o think_v they_o be_v nor_o any_o other_o may_v be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n whereto_o the_o doctor_n repli_v belike_o he_o speak_v otherwise_o then_o he_o think_v and_o then_o add_v a_o other_o testimony_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la which_o say_v that_o timothy_n be_v a_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n and_o of_o a_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o where_o behold_v with_o what_o conscience_n the_o doctor_n wre_v the_o word_n of_o his_o own_o witness_n from_o their_o meaning_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o evident_a to_o they_o that_o peruse_v zuinglius_fw-la his_fw-la writing_n than_o this_o that_o with_o he_o every_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n at_o this_o day_n have_v as_o good_a right_n to_o the_o name_n of_o a_o evangelist_n and_o of_o a_o bishop_n as_o to_o the_o title_n of_o a_o presbyter_n or_o pastor_n vocat_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la paulus_n act._n 20._o presbyter●s_n i._o episcopos_fw-la evangelistas_n vel_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ministros_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la fol._n 48._o and_o tom._n 1._o fol._n 115._o in_o his_o parenesis_n to_o the_o city_n of_o helvetia_n affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n speak_v of_o 1._o tim._n 3._o be_v any_o pastor_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n quo_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la say_v he_o discimus_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ministros_fw-la episcopos_fw-la esse_fw-la et_fw-la dici_fw-la &_o eiusdem_fw-la sententia_fw-la assertorum_fw-la habemus_fw-la hieromimum_fw-la and_o fol._n 117._o have_v cite_v tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o add_v evidenter_v demonstrat_fw-la bis_fw-la locus_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o place_n evident_o show_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o we_o use_v to_o call_v parochum_fw-la a_o parish_n priest_n or_o minister_n but_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o much_o zuinglius_fw-la mislike_v the_o large_a jurisdiction_n &_o singular_a pre-eminence_n of_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n in_o use_n and_o that_o he_o be_v too_o great_a a_o favourite_n of_o the_o parish_n discipline_n to_o be_v wrest_v by_o the_o doctor_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o monarchical_a or_o rather_o in_o his_o judgement_n tyrannical_a government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n i_o pray_v the_o reader_n to_o have_v patience_n till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o doctor_n 3._o argument_n handle_v in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o this_o reply_n chap._n 11._o contain_v a_o answer_n to_o another_o of_o the_o the_o d._n argument_n concern_v the_o bishopric_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n handle_v sect_n 13-16_a from_o pag._n 98._o to_o 104._o from_o these_o two_o objection_n in_o the_o pursuit_n whereof_o the_o doctor_n 98._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 13._o pag._n 98._o feed_v himself_o with_o a_o vain_a hope_n to_o gain_v some_o advantage_n he_o now_o return_v to_o give_v a_o fresh_a onset_n on_o his_o adversary_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o suppose_a evangelisticall_a function_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n and_o admit_v no_o succession_n as_o be_v both_o extraordinary_a &_o temporary_a but_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n viz._n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o crect_n consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o parson_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n therefore_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n &_o titus_n have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a this_o argument_n lay_v down_o serm_n pag._n 79._o his_o refuter_fw-la take_v to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o antecedent_n of_o that_o objection_n which_o affirm_v timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v evangelist_n and_o who_o will_v not_o have_v so_o judge_v see_v the_o conclusion_n deny_v their_o function_n &_o authority_n to_o be_v evangelisticall_a but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o introduction_n premise_v before_o this_o argument_n hereof_o we_o may_v conclude_v thus_o show_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o deny_v or_o disprove_v that_o antecedent_n but_o to_o bring_v a_o new_a supply_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n which_o difference_n i_o refer_v whole_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n not_o doubt_v but_o he_o will_v discharge_v the_o refuter_fw-la from_o all_o blame_n either_o of_o wilful_a or_o of_o negligent_a mistake_n and_o whereas_o he_o flat_o deni_v that_o he_o do_v deny_v they_o be_v evangelist_n that_o he_o may_v not_o hide_v himself_o under_o a_o cloud_n i_o desire_v he_o plain_o to_o answer_v we_o whither_o they_o remain_v evangelist_n after_o that_o call_n which_o he_o suppose_v they_o have_v to_o be_v bishop_n if_o yea_o why_o do_v he_o insinuate_v the_o contrary_n pag._n 95._o lin_v 24._o etc._n etc._n when_o to_o justify_v this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o evangelist_n but_o pastor_n and_o bp_n he_o say_v that_o after_o they_o be_v place_v the_o one_o in_o ephesus_n the_o other_o in_o crect_n they_o traveil_v not_o up_o and_o down_o as_o in_o former_a time_n when_o they_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n but_o ordinary_o remain_v with_o their_o flock_n if_o not_o why_o make_v he_o his_o reader_n believe_v that_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o argument_n above_o mention_v he_o neither_o do_v nor_o do_v intend_v to_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v evangelist_n but_o as_o often_o before_o so_o here_o again_o we_o must_v and_o will_v follow_v he_o in_o his_o own_o way_n when_o he_o say_v his_o purpose_n be_v from_o the_o former_a conclusion_n thus_o to_o argue_v the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n be_v either_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a as_o the_o disciplinarian_o teach_v or_o else_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a as_o the_o prelatist_n affirm_v but_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a therefore_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a here_o the_o assumption_n be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o former_a argument_n and_o the_o proposition_n he_o take_v for_o grant_v as_o if_o it_o full_o deliver_v the_o point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o he_o with_o his_o associate_n in_o the_o cause_n he_o plead_v wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v leave_n to_o lay_v down_o our_o own_o opinion_n more_o clear_o which_o be_v this_o in_o few_o word_n first_o we_o distinguish_v function_n from_o authority_n both_o which_o the_o doct._n confound_v for_o though_o we_o affirm_v their_o function_n there_o exercise_v to_o be_v evangelisticall_a and_o therefore_o extraordinary_a yet_o we_o do_v not_o so_o avouch_v of_o their_o whole_a authority_n nor_o yet_o of_o that_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n whereof_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o former_a argument_n as_o the_o doct._n may_v perceive_v by_o the_o refuter_n word_n whereof_o he_o take_v notice_n pag._n 84._o again_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o authority_n simple_o consider_v and_o in_o general_a to_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o preach_v and_o ordain_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o particular_a or_o personal_a authority_n which_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o these_o work_n be_v invest_v in_o their_o person_n and_o give_v they_o allowance_n in_o all_o place_n where_o they_o come_v to_o exercise_v the_o work_n of_o their_o call_n and_o therefore_o though_o we_o grant_v as_o before_o be_v note_v the_o authority_n itself_o in_o abstracto_fw-la &_o simple_o consider_v to_o be_v ordinary_o and_o perpetual_o necessary_a yet_o we_o affirm_v their_o personal_a authority_n to_o be_v evangelisticall_a because_o all_o the_o authority_n they_o have_v do_v flow_v from_o their_o evangelisticall_a function_n for_o like_a as_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o baptize_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o apostleship_n so_o do_v timothy_n &_o titus_n both_o preach_v and_o impose_v hand_n etc._n etc._n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o evangelistship_n so_o then_o to_o make_v answer_n first_o to_o the_o d._n disjunctive_a argument_n 1._o as_o touch_v the_o function_n which_o timothy_n &_o titus_n exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n utter_o reject_v his_o assumption_n 2._o touch_v their_o authority_n consist_v as_o
he_o say_v special_o in_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n if_o he_o take_v it_o personal_o for_o that_o which_o be_v invest_v in_o they_o by_o the_o ministerial_a function_n which_o they_o there_o exercise_v then_o i_o reject_v the_o assumption_n also_o in_o that_o behalf_n but_o if_o it_o be_v take_v simple_o and_o at_o large_a for_o any_o authority_n to_o exercise_v the_o like_a work_n either_o in_o the_o same_o church_n or_o in_o any_o other_o then_o i_o disclaim_v his_o proposition_n for_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o affirm_v this_o authority_n to_o be_v proper_a unto_o evangelist_n that_o we_o hold_v it_o rather_o common_a to_o every_o pastor_n in_o his_o own_o congregation_n let_v the_o reader_n see_v what_o the_o doctor_n observe_v for_o this_o purpose_n pag._n 79._o &_o 84._o and_o what_o we_o have_v add_v cap._n 8._o sect_n 12_o touch_v their_o pre-eminence_n above_o other_o minister_n and_o the_o continuance_n thereof_o in_o the_o precedent_n of_o synod_n now_o to_o come_v to_o his_o argument_n first_o set_v down_o and_o to_o pass_v by_o that_o fault_n of_o mencion_v function_n only_o in_o the_o proposition_n whereas_o 99_o sect._n 2._o add_v pag._n 98._o 99_o authority_n be_v also_o join_v with_o it_o in_o the_o assumption_n and_o conclusion_n the_o assumption_n which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la must_v for_o the_o clear_n of_o his_o true_a meaning_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o member_n the_o one_o serve_v proper_o for_o the_o plain_a &_o natural_a assumption_n viz._n that_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n the_o other_o serve_v either_o for_o the_o medius_n terminus_fw-la of_o a_o prosyllogism_n to_o confirm_v the_o former_a or_o at_o least_o for_o a_o explication_n of_o his_o meaning_n therein_o viz._n that_o the_o function_n &_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v or_o exercise_v in_o those_o church_n be_v such_o as_o assign_v they_o to_o the_o particular_a care_n thereof_o and_o consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n the_o refuter_fw-la for_o brevity_n sake_n omit_v to_o distinguish_v these_o two_o differ_v proposition_n enfold_v in_o one_o fit_v his_o answer_n to_o the_o late_a affirm_v as_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o therein_o he_o do_v but_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o asmuch_o as_o he_o assume_v for_o beg_v the_o doct._n beg_v truth_n these_o two_o point_n before_o convince_v of_o falsehood_n viz._n 1._o that_o they_o be_v assign_v to_o the_o perpetual_a charge_n of_o those_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o their_o authority_n be_v such_o a_o preheminent_a power_n in_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o he_o ascribe_v elsewhere_o to_o bishop_n if_o prejudice_n or_o rather_o malice_n as_o it_o may_v be_v fear_v have_v not_o blind_v the_o doctor_n he_o may_v have_v aswell_o discern_v this_o as_o some_o other_o have_v do_v that_o borrow_v no_o light_n from_o the_o refuter_fw-la by_o any_o private_a conference_n with_o he_o to_o find_v out_o his_o true_a meaning_n and_o then_o he_o may_v have_v spare_v that_o outrageous_a calumniation_n he_o rove_v and_o rave_v as_o man_n use_v to_o do_v which_o be_v at_o a_o nonplus_n will_v fain_o seem_v to_o answer_v somewhat_o but_o to_o answer_v his_o assumption_n as_o he_o have_v now_o naked_o propound_v it_o viz._n that_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n i_o answer_v with_o the_o distinction_n before_o use_v to_o wit_n that_o their_o personal_a authority_n perish_v with_o their_o function_n and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o assumption_n be_v false_a howsoever_o there_o remain_v unto_o perpetual_a succession_n a_o authority_n to_o perform_v the_o same_o ministerial_a work_n which_o they_o exercise_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o temporary_a function_n so_o that_o if_o he_o will_v prove_v the_o assumption_n in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o it_o be_v deny_v then_o must_v he_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n not_o only_o of_o their_o authority_n in_o general_a and_o for_o the_o work_v sake_n which_o they_o perform_v but_o also_o of_o their_o particular_a function_n and_o of_o that_o personal_a authority_n which_o they_o there_o exercise_v so_o as_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o do_v end_n with_o their_o person_n but_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n the_o proof_n therefore_o of_o his_o assumption_n must_v thus_o run_v that_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o welbeing_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n but_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well-being_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n therefore_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o there_o exercise_v be_v not_o to_o end_v in_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n here_o the_o assumption_n be_v deny_v because_o however_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a yet_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o church_n a_o evangelist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o endow_v with_o that_o peculiar_a function_n &_o personal_a authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v for_o the_o good_a order_n and_o execute_v of_o that_o power_n the_o doctor_n say_v he_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o which_o be_v deny_v scz_n that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o evangelist_n in_o every_o church_n neither_o be_v he_o willing_a to_o see_v that_o his_o assumption_n do_v both_o in_o effect_n affirm_v as_o much_o &_o plain_o avouche_v what_o he_o dare_v not_o to_o justify_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o very_a function_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n exercise_v be_v perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well-being_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o avoid_v this_o gross_a absurdity_n he_o will_v needs_o now_o divide_v their_o 101._o sect._n 3._o add_v sect_n 14._o pag_n 100_o 101._o function_n from_o their_o authority_n which_o hitherto_o he_o have_v conjoin_v for_o thus_o he_o explain_v his_o assumption_n the_o function_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n exercise_v be_v ordinary_a and_o their_o authority_n perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n of_o which_o two_o point_n he_o say_v his_o refuter_fw-la grant_v the_o late_a &_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o former_a as_o if_o the_o former_a branch_n can_v escape_v his_o touch_n when_o his_o whole_a assumption_n be_v reject_v as_o false_a or_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o that_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o general_a which_o the_o refuter_fw-la grant_v to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a and_o that_o peculiar_a authority_n which_o be_v invest_v in_o timothy_n and_o titus_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o particular_a function_n which_o be_v before_o deny_v to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n but_o in_o truth_n as_o he_o have_v d_o o_o sweet_a d_o now_o distribute_v and_o construe_v the_o part_n of_o his_o assumption_n in_o the_o second_o he_o idle_o affirm_v what_o be_v never_o deny_v and_o so_o leave_v untouched_a the_o point_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v and_o in_o the_o first_o he_o offend_v more_o gross_o for_o he_o borrow_v the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o first_o argument_n to_o make_v good_a the_o assumption_n of_o the_o same_o before_o he_o prove_v the_o function_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n to_o be_v ordinary_a &_o episcopal_a because_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a and_o now_o to_o prove_v that_o their_o function_n be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n and_o therefore_o not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a function_n and_o the_o same_o which_o the_o bishop_n that_o succeed_v they_o do_v exercise_v and_o to_o make_v a_o mend_n for_o this_o beg_v the_o doct._n beg_v impudent_a beg_n he_o multipli_v his_o default_n by_o heap_v up_o many_o assertion_n whereof_o some_o be_v apparent_o false_a and_o the_o rest_n no_o less_o doubtful_a than_o the_o point_n which_o he_o indeavore_v to_o justify_v for_o first_o it_o be_v false_a which_o he_o say_v of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o in_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o extraordinary_a but_o their_o not_o limitation_n to_o any_o certain_a church_n &_o so_o be_v that_o which_o he_o add_v to_o prove_v it_o viz._n that_o their_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n be_v ordinary_a and_o their_o gift_n attain_a
contradict_v also_o a_o other_o report_n of_o his_o witness_n eusebius_n jerom_n and_o dorotheus_n viz._n that_o anianus_n succeed_v mark_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o 8._o year_n of_o nero_n as_o be_v then_o and_o there_o martyr_a for_o the_o doct._n himself_o serm_n pag._n 82._o refer_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o peter_n &_o paul_n to_o the_o very_a late_a end_n of_o nero_n his_o reign_n which_o be_v 4._o or_o 5._o year_n after_o again_o howsoever_o some_o do_v give_v he_o the_o name_n of_o a_o bishop_n yet_o nothing_o be_v say_v by_o any_o one_o that_o can_v conclude_v the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n 6._o sect._n 6._o as_o be_v affix_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o one_o church_n yea_o rather_o they_o all_o give_v he_o not_o only_o the_o name_n but_o also_o the_o right_a function_n of_o a_o evangelist_n not_o only_o in_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n but_o also_o in_o traveiling_n from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o plant_v and_o establish_v church_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n nicephorus_n most_o full_o justify_v he_o to_o be_v a_o right_a evangelist_n for_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 43._o he_o report_v that_o mark_v publish_v the_o gospel_n not_o only_o in_o egypt_n but_o also_o in_o libya_n and_o in_o all_o barbaria_n also_o to_o they_o of_o pentapolis_n and_o cykue_v and_o that_o he_o there_o constitute_v church_n and_o give_v they_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o doctor_n oversight_n be_v most_o to_o be_v admire_v in_o his_o bring_n of_o eusebius_n to_o witness_v he_o the_o d._n own_o witness_n be_v against_o he_o his_o bishoprik_n at_o alexandria_n for_o the_o contrary_n appear_v by_o the_o order_n which_o he_o observe_v in_o set_v down_o the_o number_n and_o name_n of_o such_o as_o he_o account_v bishop_n of_o that_o church_n for_o in_o his_o account_n anianus_n be_v the_o first_o and_o abilinus_n the_o second_o lib._n 2._o ca._n 24._o &_o 3._o 12._o and_o cerdo_v the_o three_o which_o after_o anianus_n the_o first_o bishop_n govern_v that_o church_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o what_o can_v be_v more_o full_a and_o plain_a to_o show_v that_o in_o eusebius_n his_o judgement_n anianus_n and_o not_o mark_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n as_o for_o those_o word_n whereon_o the_o doctor_n build_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 24._o that_o anianus_n first_o undertake_v the_o public_a administration_n of_o the_o church_n at_o alexandria_n after_o mark_v the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n if_o prejudice_n have_v not_o stand_v in_o his_o light_n and_o other_o in_o who_o step_n he_o tread_v they_o may_v have_v see_v their_o gross_a mistake_n of_o his_o meaning_n who_o distinguish_v he_o from_o his_o successor_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n for_o if_o mark_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n because_o anianus_n first_o obtain_v bishopric_n after_o he_o then_o let_v peter_n be_v acknowledge_v the_o first_o bishop_n also_o at_o rome_n because_o at_o antioch_n ignatius_n be_v the_o second_o bishop_n by_o succession_n after_o peter_n euseb_n lib_n 3_o ca._n 30._o and_o at_o rome_n clemens_n after_o peter_n govern_v that_o church_n jeron_n lib._n 1._o cont_n jovin_n yea_o let_v not_o james_n any_o long_o be_v reckon_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n because_o he_o undertake_v the_o charge_n thereof_o after_o the_o apostle_n or_o rather_o immediate_o after_o christ_n passion_n but_o if_o the_o doctor_n can_v discern_v as_o he_o do_v serm_n pag._n 82._o and_o 83._o that_o eusebius_n exclude_v peter_n &_o paul_n from_o the_o place_n or_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n at_o rome_n when_o he_o give_v the_o first_o place_n to_o linus_n after_o they_o the_o second_o to_o anacletus_fw-la and_o so_o forward_o do_v he_o not_o witting_o wrong_v his_o witness_n and_o deceive_v his_o reader_n when_o he_o take_v their_o word_n for_o a_o certain_a evidence_n that_o mark_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o say_v that_o anianus_n do_v first_o obtain_v the_o government_n after_o mark._n in_o the_o four_o place_n simeon_n the_o son_n of_o cleophas_n be_v by_o the_o 113._o sect._n 7._o add_v p._n 112._o 113._o doctor_n produce_v as_o ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o james_n as_o eusebius_n testify_v lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o but_o it_o be_v little_a for_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n that_o it_o be_v enforce_v to_o crave_v aid_n of_o such_o fabulous_a report_n as_o fly_a fame_n scatter_v and_o he_o must_v pardon_v we_o this_o fault_n that_o we_o can_v hardly_o credit_v the_o tale_n for_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v think_v it_o necessary_a that_o each_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n will_v they_o have_v suffer_v jerusalem_n to_o have_v want_v one_o for_o 10._o year_n together_o after_o james_n his_o death_n for_o james_n live_v not_o above_o 30._o year_n after_o christ_n passion_n as_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v serm_n pag._n 69._o but_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o happen_v before_o simeons_n choice_n as_o eusebius_n say_v fall_v out_o in_o the_o 40._o year_n after_o christ_n death_n cent._n lib._n 2._o col_fw-fr 664._o be_v there_o now_o immediate_o after_o the_o city_n destruction_n more_o need_n of_o a_o bishop_n there_o then_o before_o and_o be_v the_o choice_n of_o their_o bishop_n a_o matter_n of_o that_o moment_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n remain_v alive_a must_v needs_o meet_v together_o to_o make_v the_o election_n and_o must_v he_o needs_o be_v one_o of_o christ_n kindred_n yet_o let_v it_o be_v grant_v since_o the_o doctor_n will_v have_v it_o so_o that_o simeon_n be_v the_o next_o unto_o james_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o eusebius_n affirm_v and_o be_v it_o grant_v also_o that_o john_n ordain_v policarpe_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n and_o that_o he_o constitute_v bishop_n in_o diverse_a other_o place_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n in_o every_o place_n commit_v the_o church_n to_o bishop_n and_o leave_v they_o their_o successor_n as_o iren●us_a and_o other_o testify_v how_o will_v the_o doctor_n prove_v that_o all_o these_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n induce_v with_o a_o singular_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o many_o church_n or_o congregation_n which_o be_v as_o his_o refuter_fw-la say_v the_o very_a soul_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n the_o doctor_n in_o his_o wisdom_n pass_v by_o this_o point_n as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o see_v it_o in_o his_o refuter_n answer_v and_o false_o charge_v he_o to_o take_v exception_n against_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o father_n which_o affirm_v bishop_n to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n whereas_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o deni_v only_o the_o doctor_n inference_n that_o from_o the_o father_n affirmation_n conclude_v diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n this_o arise_v say_v he_o from_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o word_n bishop_n which_o in_o the_o first_o time_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a pastor_n wherefore_o since_o the_o doctor_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o in_o a_o idle_a flourish_n repeat_v that_o which_o he_o have_v in_o effect_n before_o deliver_v viz._n that_o the_o apostle_n derive_v their_o authority_n aswell_o for_o government_n as_o for_o doctrine_n unto_o bishop_n we_o shall_v but_o waste_v word_n and_o time_n in_o vain_a if_o we_o shall_v vouchsafe_v he_o any_o other_o answer_n then_o that_o already_o give_v and_o remain_v yet_o untouched_a chap._n 14._o answer_v the_o d._n 6._o chapter_n and_o show_v that_o he_o have_v not_o any_o one_o argument_n or_o testimony_n to_o prove_v direct_o as_o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n have_v answer_v all_o that_o the_o doctor_n bring_v to_o prove_v by_o consequence_n the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n because_o 140._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 2._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 138._o 140._o it_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n we_o be_v now_o to_o go●_n on_o and_o examine_v what_o he_o can_v allege_v in_o the_o last_o place_n direct_o to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n but_o before_o he_o begin_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o list_n he_o beg_v the_o change_n of_o the_o question_n propound_v question_n the_o d._n beg_v the_o change_n of_o the_o question_n this_o for_o the_o conclusion_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o prove_v viz._n that_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n which_o change_n we_o can_v be_v content_a to_o allow_v so_o that_o he_o will_v acknowledge_v his_o error_n in_o conceyve_v these_o latter_a proof_n to_o be_v more_o direct_a than_o the_o former_a for_o he_o fetch_v a_o far_o more_o large_a compass_n by_o consequence_n to_o conclude_v his_o main_a doctrine_n see_v there_o be_v much_o
assumption_n and_o hereunto_o the_o less_o labour_n will_v serve_v see_v we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o archippus_n if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n yet_o can_v not_o be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o for_o epaphras_n their_o first_o teacher_n still_o continue_v one_o of_o they_o and_o a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n for_o they_o coloss_n 1._o 7._o &_o 4._o 12._o and_o archippus_n be_v subject_v unto_o the_o church_n admonition_n and_o censure_n in_o the_o very_a word_n whereunto_o the_o doctor_n send_v we_o coloss_n 4._o 17._o which_o be_v palaion_n in_o deed_n but_o nimis_fw-la apostolicum_fw-la too_o apostolical_a for_o our_o time_n as_o musculus_fw-la upon_o those_o word_n say_v but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o relief_n the_o doctor_n foresee_v that_o his_o assumption_n will_v be_v deny_v yield_v to_o support_v it_o for_o proof_n hereof_o say_v he_o it_o suffice_v i_o that_o archippus_n be_v as_o ambrose_n note_v in_o colos_n 4._o 17._o bishop_n of_o colosse_n which_o be_v a_o city_n see_v i_o have_v manifest_o prove_v before_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o city_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n and_o must_v this_o proof_n need_v suffice_v other_o because_o it_o suffici_v he_o know_v he_o not_o that_o we_o expect_v he_o shall_v yield_v ●s_a some_o clear_a proof_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n why_o make_v he_o show_v at_o the_o first_o as_o though_o he_o will_v prove_v archippus_n his_o bishopric_n from_o colos_n 4._o 17._o and_o now_o fall_v from_o those_o word_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ambrose_n who_o live_v well_o nigh_o 400._o year_n after_o belike_o upon_o his_o second_o thought_n he_o discern_v that_o the_o same_o exhortation_n use_v to_o archippus_n which_o he_o give_v to_o timothy_n 2._o tim._n 4._o 5._o do_v not_o necessary_o argue_v that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o office_n or_o else_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v prevail_v little_a in_o so_o argue_v with_o those_o which_o hold_v timothy_n to_o have_v be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o not_o a_o bishop_n and_o sure_o it_o avail_v his_o cause_n as_o little_a to_o send_v we_o to_o s._n ambrose_n see_v he_o have_v not_o one_o word_n that_o can_v argue_v a_o diocesan_n bishopric_n in_o archippus_n he_o call_v he_o praepositum_fw-la illorum_fw-la et_fw-la rectorem_fw-la qui_fw-la post_fw-la epaphram_n accepit_fw-la regendam_fw-la eorum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la which_o may_v argue_v i_o grant_v a_o episcopal_a ministry_n at_o large_a but_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o conclude_v the_o preheminent_a superiority_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n nay_o this_o be_v rather_o confute_v by_o ambrose_n who_o say_v of_o epaphras_n that_o he_o be_v ●vis_fw-fr illorum_fw-la et_fw-la affectu_fw-la unanimitatis_fw-la charissimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o if_o he_o remain_v civis_fw-la illorum_fw-la then_o also_o their_o teacher_n and_o bishop_n though_o absent_a for_o a_o time_n from_o they_o and_o nothing_o inferior_a to_o archippus_n but_o rather_o in_o order_n at_o least_o as_o in_o affection_n before_o he_o his_o assumption_n therefore_o have_v no_o relief_n neither_o from_o the_o 4._o sect._n 4._o apostle_n paul_n nor_o yet_o from_o s._n ambrose_n rely_v whole_o upon_o this_o poor_a argument_n borrow_v from_o some_o other_o part_n of_o his_o defence_n the_o bishop_n of_o city_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n archippus_n be_v bishop_n of_o colosse_n which_o be_v a_o city_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o dioecsan_n bishop_n i_o answer_v first_o to_o the_o proposition_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v before_o manifest_o prove_v although_o bishop_n be_v diocesan_n whence_o once_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o people_n inhabit_v city_n become_v subject_a to_o the_o oversight_n of_o one_o bishop_n yet_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o church_n plant_v in_o city_n be_v not_o diocesan_n bishop_n for_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o be_v bishop_n be_v but_o a_o small_a handful_n to_o a_o large_a heap_n in_o comparison_n to_o the_o whole_a city_n can_v not_o be_v proper_o diocese_n as_o we_o have_v sufficient_o show_v in_o our_o answer_n to_o all_o his_o proof_n produce_v to_o the_o contrary_n second_o to_o his_o assumpion_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o it_o be_v a_o know_a untruth_n to_o affirm_v the_o city_n of_o colosse_n to_o have_v be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o archippus_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o he_o have_v that_o sole_a or_o singular_a pre-eminence_n over_o the_o church_n of_o colosse_n which_o appertain_v to_o bishop_n such_o as_o the_o do._n contend_v for_o if_o therefore_o he_o will_v hereafter_o endeavour_n to_o make_v good_a the_o assertion_n that_o archippus_n be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n &_o so_o ordain_v of_o god_n he_o must_v seek_v out_o some_o more_o pregnant_a proof_n than_o his_o study_n for_o his_o sermon_n &_o the_o defence_n thereof_o have_v as_o yet_o afford_v he_o last_o as_o touch_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n whereas_o he_o shall_v conclude_v the_o same_o which_o he_o have_v affirm_v of_o timothy_n and_o archippus_n viz._n that_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n he_o alter_v the_o conclusion_n to_o this_o that_o they_o have_v divine_a institution_n and_o approbation_n for_o their_o function_n end_n the_o doct._n change_v to_o the_o end_n but_o of_o this_o change_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o his._n 3._o argument_n distinct_o propound_v in_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 93._o &_o 94._o he_o now_o reduce_v to_o this_o one_o syllogism_n those_o who_o be_v call_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n angel_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v of_o the_o 7._o church_n and_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o 7._o star_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n right_a hand_n have_v divine_a both_o institution_n &_o approbation_n but_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v call_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n and_o be_v signify_v by_o the●_n star_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n hand_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v divine_a both_o institution_n &_o approbation_n the_o assumption_n which_o he_o know_v will_v not_o without_o good_a proof_n be_v admit_v he_o say_v he_o go_v not_o about_o to_o prove_v now_o because_o it_o be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o sermon_n and_o since_o he_o have_v add_v nothing_o else_o for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o but_o that_o which_o be_v answer_v to_o the_o full_a already_o till_o some_o better_a evidence_n come_v in_o place_n his_o conclusion_n must_v lie_v in_o the_o dust_n and_o we_o may_v i_o hope_v with_o the_o reader_n good_a allowance_n conclude_v that_o he_o have_v not_o any_o one_o argument_n from_o any_o part_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o show_v that_o that_o the_o function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v be_v of_o divine_a institution_n there_o remain_v now_o that_o leave_v the_o scripture_n we_o examine_v that_o first_o argument_n of_o his_o 3._o touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n handle_v by_o he_o serm_n pag._n 56._o 60._o &_o defence_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 1._o where_o all_o his_o humane_a testimony_n come_v to_o be_v handle_v but_o because_o this_o second_o part_n be_v already_o large_a enough_o i_o will_v here_o break_v of_o and_o refer_v the_o examination_n thereof_o together_o with_o that_o first_o point_n of_o his_o five_o which_o concern_v govern_v elder_n to_o the_o three_o part_n
esteem_v they_o to_o be_v the_o proper_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 141._o lin_v 18._o and_o give_v unto_o other_o presbyter_n se●m_n pag._n 45._o not_o other_o pastoral_a authority_n than_o what_o be_v delegated_a unto_o they_o by_o their_o bishop_n wherefore_o like_o as_o he_o reason_v to_o show_v the_o lawfullnes_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n pag._n 54_o so_o may_v we_o to_o prove_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o his_o own_o word_n that_o it_o be_v general_o or_o immutable_o necessary_a or_o perpetual_o impose_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n on_o all_o church_n for_o if_o the_o office_n of_o presbyter_n which_o in_o his_o opinion_n be_v but_o assitante_n unto_o the_o bishop_n admit_v in_o partem_fw-la sollicitudinis_fw-la to_o seed_v that_o part_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o shall_v commit_v unto_o they_o be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o necessary_a also_o to_o be_v retain_v and_o that_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la then_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v much_o more_o of_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v as_o he_o suppose_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a pastor_n even_o by_o god_n ordinance_n but_o if_o their_o function_n be_v not_o divini_fw-la juris_fw-la nor_o general_o and_o perpetual_o necessary_a for_o all_o church_n then_o let_v the_o doctor_n also_o profess_v plain_o that_o he_o maintain_v not_o the_o office_n of_o presbyter_n or_o any_o other_o minister_n to_o be_v more_o the_o doct._n say_v as_o much_o for_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o diego_n ocesan_n bishop_n as_o of_o any_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n yea_o &_o more_o divini_fw-la juris_fw-la and_o general_o or_o perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o feed_n or_o govern_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n yea_o let_v he_o without_o stagger_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a not_o the_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la necessary_a but_o leave_v to_o every_o church_n liberty_n to_o accept_v or_o refuse_v as_o they_o shall_v see_v expedient_a those_o that_o be_v authorize_v of_o god_n as_o star_n angel_n pastor_n and_o guide_n to_o convey_v unto_o they_o the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o the_o word_n or_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o to_o convert_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n but_o 2._o do_v not_o his_o reason_a import_n the_o contrary_a when_o he_o say_v pag._n 55._o that_o if_o every_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o call_n with_o double_a honour_n viz._n of_o reverence_n and_o maintenance_n which_o he_o say_v serm_n of_o the_o dignity_n and_o duty_n of_o the_o minister_n p._n 65._o &_o 73._o be_v due_a to_o they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yea_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la they_o much_o more_o be_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a minister_n to_o be_v have_v in_o honour_n yea_o do_v he_o not_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o sermon_n in_o question_n infer_v these_o use_n &_o impose_v they_o on_o the_o conscience_n of_o his_o hearer_n pag._n 94_o &_o 96_o viz._n 1._o to_o acknowledge_v their_o function_n to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n 2._o to_o have_v they_o in_o honour_n as_o spiritual_a father_n as_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v the_o philippian_n cap._n 2._o 29._o and_o to_o receyve_v they_o as_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v call_v in_o his_o text_n 3._o to_o obey_v their_o authority_n as_o be_v the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n exhortation_n heb._n 13._o 17._o for_o can_v the_o consideration_n of_o god_n ordinance_n appoint_v their_o function_n &_o command_a honour_n and_o obedience_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n bind_v the_o conscience_n at_o this_o day_n if_o their_o function_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v continue_v or_o can_v the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n phil._n 2._o 29._o &_o heb._n 13._o 17._o touch_n the_o conscience_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n so_o strict_o as_o he_o pretend_v and_o not_o reach_v at_o all_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o those_o professor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n that_o live_v in_o other_o reform_a church_n it_o be_v true_a i_o confess_v that_o such_o leader_n and_o labourer_n in_o the_o lord_n work_v must_v first_o be_v have_v before_o they_o can_v be_v honour_v and_o obey_v but_o do_v not_o these_o exhortation_n and_o many_o other_o apostolic_a canon_n which_o prescribe_v what_o be_v require_v either_o of_o minister_n for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o flock_n or_o of_o people_n for_o encouragement_n of_o their_o teacher_n as_o act._n 20._o 28._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 2._o 4._o &_o 5._o 17._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 2._o 3._o 1._o cor._n 9_o 14._o gal._n 6_o 6._o 1._o thess_n 5._o 12._o 13._o heb._n 13_o 17._o by_o a_o equal_a bond_n bind_v all_o church_n aswell_o to_o labour_v for_o the_o establish_n of_o such_o elder_n bishop_n and_o leader_n as_o to_o see_v that_o when_o they_o be_v settle_v they_o may_v both_o give_v all_o diligence_n to_o perform_v their_o duty_n and_o receive_v all_o reverence_n and_o honour_v due_a unto_o they_o and_o 3_o how_o often_o do_v he_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o defence_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 24._o 26._o 44._o 48_o 55._o 59_o 63._o et_fw-la alibi_fw-la passim_fw-la that_o many_o of_o his_o allegation_n do_v testify_v for_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n not_o only_o de_fw-mi f●cto_fw-it but_o also_o the_o jure_fw-la as_o give_v test_n money_n to_o the_o right_n and_o show_v what_o form_n of_o government_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n which_o he_o approve_v perpetual_a and_o though_o he_o return_v the_o lie_n upon_o his_o refuter_fw-la lib._n 3_o pag_n 57_o for_o say_v that_o he_o plain_o avouch_v a_o necessity_n of_o retain_v the_o government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o as_o it_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o unity_n and_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o schism_n so_o it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n to_o be_v rete●ned_v yet_o he_o confess_v pag._n 64._o that_o jeroms_n judgement_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v be_v that_o bishop_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v retain_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n to_o wit_n the_o avoid_n of_o schism_n for_o which_o they_o be_v first_o institute_v and_o from_o the_o same_o word_n of_o jerom_n he_o collect_v pag._n 111._o that_o of_o necessity_n a_o p●erelesse_a power_n be_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o bishop_n wherefore_o if_o the_o offend_v which_o way_n soever_o the_o doct._n turn_v he_o he_o offend_v d._n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o a_o plainly_a and_o notorious_a falsification_n of_o jeroms_n meaning_n in_o carry_v his_o word_n to_o a_o necessity_n in_o retain_v bishop_n sure_o he_o have_v much_o wrong_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o charge_v he_o with_o the_o like_a guiltyne_n for_o the_o like_a collection_n and_o if_o he_o consent_v not_o in_o judgement_n with_o jerom_n he_o do_v too_o much_o abuse_v his_o reader_n in_o fortify_v his_o assertion_n with_o his_o testimony_n unless_o he_o have_v give_v some_o intimation_n wherein_o he_o swarve_v in_o opinion_n from_o he_o but_o 4._o he_o discover_v his_o own_o judgement_n touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_a bishop_n something_o more_o clear_o when_o he_o say_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 3._o that_o of_o provincial_a or_o national_a church_n the_o metropolitan_n &_o bishop_n of_o diocese_n a●e_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o governor_n for_o if_o he_o have_v intend_v only_o a_o lawfullnes_n and_o not_o a_o necessity_n of_o reteyninge_v refuter_fw-la the_o doct._n wrongful_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la their_o function_n he_o will_v have_v say_v they_o be_v and_o may_v be_v rather_o than_o as_o he_o do_v they_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o governor_n yea_o in_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 32._o do_v he_o not_o imply_v a_o necessity_n i_o say_v not_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n as_o he_o wrongful_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la lib._n 3._o p._n 57_o but_o a_o general_a and_o perpetual_a necessity_n for_o succeed_v age_n aswell_o as_o for_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o he_o say_v that_o upon_o this_o threefold_a superiority_n of_o bishop_n scz_n singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n power_n of_o ordination_n and_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n there_o depend_v a_o threefold_a benefit_n to_o every_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o unity_n perpetuit_fw-la e_fw-la and_o eutaxie_n or_o good_a order_n thereof_o for_o who_o can_v deny_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v general_o and_o perpetual_o necessary_a to_o be_v retain_v in_o every_o church_n whereon_o the_o unity_n perpetuity_n &_o eutaxie_n of_o every_o church_n depend_v if_o the_o doctor_n shall_v think_v to_o escape_v by_o say_v that_o the_o perpetuity_n 147._o sect._n 5._o add_v lib._n 4_o pag._n 102_o &_o 147._o and_o